Ashura Story

Download as pdf or txt
Download as pdf or txt
You are on page 1of 68

‫ﺑﻪ ﻧﺎﻡ ﺧﺪﺍﻭﻧﺪ ﺑﺨﺸﺎﻳﺸﮕﺮ ﻣﻬﺮﺑﺎﻥ‬

‫ﺗﻘﺪﻳﻢ ﺑﻪ ﺑﺎﻧﻮﺍﻥ ﻭﺍﻻﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ‬


‫ﺣﻀﺮﺍﺕ ﺯﻳﻨﺐ)ﺱ(‪ ،‬ﺍﻡ ﻛﻠﺜﻮﻡ)ﺱ(‪ ،‬ﺭﺑﺎﺏ)ﺱ(‪ ،‬ﻓﺎﻃﻤﻪ ﺑﻨﺖ ﺣﺴﻦ)ﺱ(‪ ،‬ﺳﻜﻴﻨﻪ)ﺱ(‪ ،‬ﺭﻗﻴﻪ)ﺱ(‬
‫ﻭ ﺍﻡ ﻭﻫﺐ ﺑﺎﻧﻮﻱ ﺷﻬﻴﺪﻩ ﻛﺮﺑﻼ‬

‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬
‫ﺩﺍﺳﺘﺎﻥ ﻣﺼﻮﺭ ﻧﺒﺮﺩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ( ﺩﺭ ﺭﻭﺯ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ‬

‫ﺗﺼﻮﻳﺮ ﺳﺎﺯﻱ‪ :‬ﺳﻴﺎﻣﻚ ﺗﻜ ّﻠﻮ‬


‫ﻃﺮﺍﺣﻲ ﺻﺤﻨﻪ ﻫﺎ‪ :‬ﻣﻬﺘﺎﺏ ﻓﺮﺡ ﺍﻧﮕﻴﺰ ﺷﻴﺮﺍﺯﻱ‬
‫ﻣﺤﻘﻖ‪ :‬ﺳﻴﺪ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺣﺴﻴﻨﻲ ﻳﮕﺎﻧﻪ‬
‫ﻭﻳﺮﺍﻳﺶ ﻣﺬﻫﺒﻲ‪ :‬ﺣﺠﺖ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﻋﺒﺪﺍﷲ ﺣﻘﻴﻘﺖ‬
‫ﻭﻳﺮﺍﻳﺶ ﺍﺩﺑﻲ‪ :‬ﺣﻤﻴﺮﺍ ﺣﺴﻴﻨﻲ ﻳﮕﺎﻧﻪ ﻭ ﻣﻬﺘﺎ ﻣﻴﺮﺟﺎﻧﻲ‬

‫ﺍﻳﻦ ﻣﺠﻤﻮﻋﻪ ﺭﺍﻳﮕﺎﻥ ﺍﺳﺖ‬


‫ﻭﻳﺮﺍﻳﺶ ﺍﻭﻝ ﺩﻱ ﻣﺎﻩ ﺳﺎﻝ ‪ 1387‬ﻫﺠﺮﻱ ﺷﻤﺴﻲ‬
‫ﻫﻴﺎﺕ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﺑﻮﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ)ﻉ(‬

‫ﻫﺮ ﮔﻮﻧﻪ ﺑﻬﺮﻩ ﺑﺮﺩﺍﺭﻱ ﺍﺯ ﻣﺘﻮﻥ ﻭ ﺗﺼﺎﻭﻳﺮ ﺍﻳﻦ ﻣﺠﻤﻮﻋﻪ ﺑﺎ ﺫﻛﺮ ﺳﻨﺪ ﺁﺯﺍﺩ ﺍﺳﺖ‪.‬‬
‫ﭼﺎپ ﻣﺠﺪﺩ ﺍﻳﻦ ﻣﺠﻤﻮﻋﻪ ﺑﺎ ﺷﺮﻁ ﻋﺪﻡ ﺗﻐﻴﻴﺮ ﺁﻥ ﺁﺯﺍﺩ ﺍﺳﺖ‪.‬‬
‫ﺩﺭ ﺻﻮﺭﺕ ﻧﻴﺎﺯ ﺑﻪ ﺗﻐﻴﻴﺮﺍﺕ ﺩﺭ ﺟﻬﺖ ﭼﺎپ ﻣﺠﺪﺩ ﺑﺨﺸﻲ ﺍﺯ ﺍﻳﻦ ﻣﺠﻤﻮﻋﻪ ﻳﺎ ﻛﻞ ﺁﻥ‪ ،‬ﺍﺧﺬ ﺗﺎﺋﻴﺪ ﻧﺎﺷﺮ ﺿﺮﻭﺭﻱ ﺍﺳﺖ‪.‬‬

‫ﺧﻮﺍﻧﻨﺪﻩ ﮔﺮﺍﻣﻲ‬

‫ﺍﻳﻦ ﻣﺠﻤﻮﻋﻪ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻮﻫﺒﺖ ﺧﺪﺍﻭﻧﺪ ﻣﻬﺮﺑﺎﻥ ﻭ ﺑﺎ ﺍﻃﻼﻋﺎﺕ ﻭ ﻣﻨﺎﺑﻊ ﻣﺤﺪﻭﺩ ﮔﺮﺩﺁﻭﺭﻧﺪﮔﺎﻥ‪ ،‬ﺗﺪﻭﻳﻦ ﺷﺪﻩ ﻭ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺭﻏﻢ ﺗﻼﺵ ﭘﻴﮕﻴﺮ ﺩﺭ ﺟﻬﺖ ﺭﻓﻊ ﻛﺎﺳﺘﻲ ﻫﺎﻱ ﺁﻥ‪ ،‬ﺑﻲ ﺗﺮﺩﻳﺪ‬
‫ﻧﻮﺍﻗﺼﻲ ﺩﺍﺭﺩ ﻛﻪ ﺍﺯ ﺩﻳﺪﻩ ﺭﻭﺷﻦ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺷﻤﺎ ﺧﻮﺍﻧﻨﺪﻩ ﮔﺮﺍﻣﻲ ﺩﻭﺭ ﻧﻤﻲ ﻣﺎﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺗﻘﺎﺿﺎ ﺩﺍﺭﺩ ﻫﺮ ﮔﻮﻧﻪ ﻧﻘﻄﻪ ﻧﻈﺮ ﺍﺻﻼﺣﻲ ﺩﺭ ﻫﺮ ﻳﻚ ﺍﺯ ﻣﻮﺍﺭﺩ ﺍﻋﻢ ﺍﺯ ﻣﺘﻮﻥ‪ ،‬ﺗﺼﺎﻭﻳﺮ‪ ،‬ﺻﻔﺤﻪ‬
‫ﺑﻨﺪﻱ‪ ،‬ﻧﻮﻉ ﭼﺎپ‪ ،‬ﺭﻧﮓ ﺑﻨﺪﻱ‪ ،‬ﺭﻭﺵ ﺗﻮﺯﻳﻊ‪ ... ،‬ﺭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﺁﺩﺭﺱ ﻫﻴﺎﺕ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﺑﻮﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ)ﻉ( ﺗﻬﺮﺍﻥ ﺥ ﺷﻬﻴﺪ ﺍﺟﺎﺭﻩ ﺩﺍﺭ ﻛﻮﭼﻪ ‪ 26‬ﺗﻘﻮﻱ پ‪ 332‬ﻣﻜﺎﺗﺒﻪ ﻧﻤﺎﻳﻨﺪ‪.‬‬

‫‪t‬ﻣﻜﺎﺗﺒﻪ ﺑﺎ ﺁﺩﺭﺱ ﭘﺴﺖ ﺍﻟﻜﺘﺮﻭﻧﻴﻜﻲ ‪ SMYEGANEH@YAHOO.COM‬ﺍﻣﻜﺎﻥ ﭘﺬﻳﺮ ﺍﺳﺖ‪.‬‬


‫‪t‬ﺛﺒﺖ ﻧﻘﻄﻪ ﻧﻈﺮﺍﺕ ﺩﺭ ﺳﺎﻳﺘﻬﺎﻱ ﺍﻳﻨﺘﺮﻧﺘﻲ ‪ www.tahoor.com‬ﻭ ‪ www.nasreghalam.com‬ﺍﻣﻜﺎﻥ ﭘﺬﻳﺮ ﺍﺳﺖ‪.‬‬
‫‪t‬ﻓﺎﻳﻞ ﺍﻳﻦ ﻣﺠﻤﻮﻋﻪ ﺟﻬﺖ ﻣﺸﺎﻫﺪﻩ ﻭ ﺩﺭﻳﺎﻓﺖ ﺁﻥ ﺩﺭ ﺁﺩﺭﺱ ﻫﺎﻱ ﺍﻳﻨﺘﺮﻧﺘﻲ ‪ www.tahoor.com‬ﻭ ‪ www.nasreghalam.com‬ﺩﺭ ﺩﺳﺘﺮﺱ ﺍﺳﺖ‪.‬‬
‫‪t‬ﺩﺭ ﺻﻮﺭﺕ ﻧﻴﺎﺯ ﺑﻪ ﻧﺴﺨﻪ ﻫﺎﻱ ﭼﺎپ ﺷﺪﻩ ﻳﺎ ﻛﺘﻴﺒﻪ ﻫﺎﻱ ﺍﻳﻦ ﻣﺠﻤﻮﻋﻪ ﺑﻪ ﺁﺩﺭﺱ ﻫﻴﺎﺕ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﺑﻮﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ)ﻉ( ﻣﺮﺍﺟﻌﻪ ﻧﻤﺎﻳﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫‪t‬ﺩﺭ ﺻﻮﺭﺕ ﺗﻤﺎﻳﻞ ﺑﻪ ﻣﺸﺎﺭﻛﺖ ﺩﺭ ﺍﻧﺘﺸﺎﺭ ﺍﻳﻦ ﻣﺠﻤﻮﻋﻪ ﺑﻪ ﺁﺩﺭﺱ ﻫﻴﺎﺕ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﺑﻮﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ)ﻉ( ﻣﺮﺍﺟﻌﻪ ﻧﻤﺎﻳﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﻫﺪﻑ‬

‫ﺍﻫﺪﺍﻑ ﺍﺻﻠﻲ ﺍﺯ ﮔﺮﺩﺁﻭﺭﻱ ﻣﺠﻤﻮﻋﻪ ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ ﻋﺒﺎﺭﺗﻨﺪ ﺍﺯ‪:‬‬


‫ﺗﻤﺮﻛﺰ ﺑﺮ ﻭﺍﻗﻌﻪ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ ﻭ ﺍﺭﺍﺋﻪ ﮔﺰﺍﺭﺵ ﺧﺒﺮﻱ ﺧﻼﺻﻪ ﺍﺯ ﻣﻬﻢ ﺗﺮﻳﻦ ﺭﻭﻳﺪﺍﺩﻫﺎﻱ ﺁﻥ‬ ‫‪t‬‬
‫ﺩﺳﺘﺮﺳﻲ ﺑﻪ ﻳﻚ ﺳﻨﺎﺭﻳﻮﻱ ﺍﻭﻟﻴﻪ ﺍﺯ ﻭﺍﻗﻌﻪ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ ﺟﻬﺖ ﻫﺪﺍﻳﺖ ﭘﮋﻭﻫﺸﻬﺎﻱ ﺟﺪﻳﺪ ﺩﺭ ﺟﺰﺋﻴﺎﺕ ﻫﺮ ﻳﻚ ﺍﺯ ﻟﺤﻈﻪ ﻫﺎ ﻭ ﺯﻣﺎﻧﻬﺎ‬ ‫‪t‬‬
‫ﺑﻪ ﺗﺼﻮﻳﺮ ﻛﺸﻴﺪﻥ ﺻﺤﻨﻪ ﻫﺎ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻨﻈﻮﺭ ﺳﻬﻮﻟﺖ ﺍﺭﺗﺒﺎﻁ ﺧﻮﺍﻧﻨﺪﻩ ﺑﺎ ﺩﺍﺳﺘﺎﻥ ﻭ ﺍﺭﺍﺋﻪ ﺗﺼﺎﻭﻳﺮ ﺳﺎﺩﻩ ﺑﺎ ﺣﺪﺍﻗﻞ ﺟﺰﺋﻴﺎﺕ‬ ‫‪t‬‬
‫ﺟﻤﻊ ﺑﻨﺪﻱ ﻭ ﻧﺘﻴﺠﻪ ﮔﻴﺮﻱ ﺍﺯ ﺍﺧﺒﺎﺭ ﻣﺘﻌﺪﺩ ﻣﻮﺟﻮﺩ ﻭ ﺑﻴﺎﻥ ﺩﺍﺳﺘﺎﻥ ﺑﺼﻮﺭﺕ ﻳﻜﭙﺎﺭﭼﻪ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻨﻈﻮﺭ ﺟﻠﻮﮔﻴﺮﻱ ﺍﺯ ﺳﺮﺩﺭﮔﻤﻲ ﺧﻮﺍﻧﻨﺪﻩ‬ ‫‪t‬‬

‫ﻣﺮﺍﺟﻊ‬

‫ﺩﺭ ﮔﺮﺩﺁﻭﺭﻱ ﺍﻃﻼﻋﺎﺕ‪ ،‬ﺗﺪﻭﻳﻦ ﻣﺘﻮﻥ‪ ،‬ﻃﺮﺍﺣﻲ ﺻﺤﻨﻪ ﻫﺎ ﻭ ﺗﺼﻮﻳﺮ ﺳﺎﺯﻱ ﺍﻳﻦ ﻣﺠﻤﻮﻋﻪ ﺍﺯ ﻣﻨﺎﺑﻊ ﺯﻳﺮ ﺍﺳﺘﻔﺎﺩﻩ ﺷﺪﻩ ﺍﺳﺖ‪.‬‬
‫ﺗﺎﺭﻳﺦ ﻃﺒﺮﻱ‪ ،‬ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺟﺮﻳﺮ ﻃﺒﺮﻱ‪ ،‬ﺍﺯ ﻋﻠﻤﺎﻱ ﻗﺮﻥ ﺳﻮﻡ‪ ،‬ﺗﺮﺟﻤﻪ ﺍﺑﻮﺍﻟﻘﺎﺳﻢ ﭘﺎﻳﻨﺪﻩ‪ ،‬ﭼﺎپ ﺍﻭﻝ ‪ ،1374‬ﻧﺎﺷﺮ ﺍﺳﺎﻃﻴﺮ ﺟﻠﺪ ﻫﻔﺘﻢ‬ ‫‪.1‬‬
‫ﺍﻟﻠﻬﻮﻑ ﻓﻲ ﻗﺘﻞ ﺍﻟﻄﻔﻮﻑ‪ ،‬ﺍﻟﺴﻴﺪ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻃﺎﻭﻭﺱ ‪ 664-589‬ﻫﺠﺮﻱ ﻗﻤﺮﻱ‬ ‫‪.2‬‬
‫ﺍﻋﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﻮﺭﻱ ﺑﺎﻋﻼﻡ ﺍﻟﻬﺪﻱ‪ ،‬ﺍﻣﻴﻦ ﺍﻻﺳﻼﻡ ﺍﺑﻲ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﻟﻔﻀﻞ ﺑﻦ ﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﺍﻟﻄﺒﺮﺳﻲ‪ ،‬ﺍﺯ ﻋﻠﻤﺎﻱ ﻗﺮﻥ ﺷﺸﻢ‬ ‫‪.3‬‬
‫ﺍﻟﻤﻨﺎﻗﺐ‪ ،‬ﺍﻟﻤﻮﻓﻖ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺍﻟﻤﻠﻜﻲ ﺍﻟﺨﻮﺍﺭﺯﻣﻲ‪ ،‬ﺍﻟﻤﺘﻮﻓﻲ ﺳﻨﻪ ‪ 568‬ﻫﺠﺮﻱ ﻗﻤﺮﻱ‬ ‫‪.4‬‬
‫ﻣﺜﻴﺮ ﺍﻻﺣﺰﺍﻥ‪ ،‬ﻧﺠﻢ ﺍﻟﺪﻳﻦ ﺟﻌﻔﺮ‪ ،‬ﺍﺯ ﻋﻠﻤﺎﻱ ﻗﺮﻥ ﻫﻔﺘﻢ‬ ‫‪.5‬‬
‫ﻧﻔﺲ ﺍﻟﻤﻬﻤﻮﻡ‪ ،‬ﺷﻴﺦ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﻗﻤﻲ‪ ،‬ﺗﺮﺟﻤﻪ ﻭ ﺗﻌﻠﻴﻘﺎﺕ ﺁﻳﻪ ﺍﷲ ﺣﺎﺝ ﻣﻴﺮﺯﺍ ﺍﺑﻮﺍﻟﺤﺴﻦ ﺷﻌﺮﺍﻧﻲ‬ ‫‪.6‬‬
‫ﻣﻘﺘﻞ ﻣﻘﺮﻡ‪،‬ﻋﺒﺪﺍﻟﺮﺯﺍﻕ ﻣﻮﺳﻮﻱ ﻣﻘﺮﻡ‬ ‫‪.7‬‬
‫ﻣﻘﺘﻞ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ(‪ ،‬ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﺣﺪﻳﺚ ﭘﮋﻭﻫﺸﻜﺪﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺑﺎﻗﺮ)ﻉ(‬ ‫‪.8‬‬
‫ﺣﻤﺎﺳﻪ ﺣﺴﻴﻨﻲ‪ ،‬ﺍﺳﺘﺎﺩ ﺷﻬﻴﺪ ﻣﺮﺗﻀﻲ ﻣﻄﻬﺮﻱ‬ ‫‪.9‬‬
‫ﻓﻬﺮﺳﺖ‬
‫ﻏﺮﺑﺖ ﻋﺘﺮﺕ‪1......................................................................................‬‬
‫ﺩﺍﺳﺘﺎﻥ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ‪1........................................................................................................‬‬
‫ﺍﻗﻴﺎﻧﻮﺱ ﺑﻴﻜﺮﺍﻥ‪2.......................................................................................................‬‬
‫ﺁﻏﺎﺯ ﻏﺮﺑﺖ‪2.............................................................................................................‬‬
‫ﻗﻴﺎﻡ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ )ﻉ(‪3.........................................................................‬‬
‫ﺁﻏﺎﺯ ﺩﻭﺭﻩ ﺳﻠﻄﻨﺖ ﺍﻣﻮﻱ‪3..........................................................................................‬‬
‫ﭘﺎﺩﮔﺎﻥ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ‪4............................................................................................................‬‬
‫ﻭﺭﻭﺩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ )ﻉ( ﺑﻪ ﻛﺮﺑﻼ‪4.............................................................................................‬‬
‫ﻣﺤﺎﺻﺮﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ )ﻉ(‪8....................................................................‬‬
‫ﺭﺳﻴﺪﻥ ﺳــﭙﺎﻫﻴﺎﻥ ﺟﺪﻳﺪ ﺑﻪ ﻛﺮﺑﻼ‪8.................................................................................‬‬
‫ﺟﻨﮕﺠﻮﻳﺎﻥ ﺑﻨﻲ ﺍﺳﺪ‪10................................................................................................‬‬
‫ﻳﺎﻓﺘﻦ ﺁﺏ ﺩﺭ ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻜﻲ ﺍﺭﺩﻭﮔﺎﻩ‪10.................................................................................‬‬
‫ﺍﻭﻟﻴﻦ ﺟﻨﮓ ﺳﻘﺎ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺁﻭﺭﺩﻥ ﺁﺏ‪10............................................................................‬‬
‫ﻣﻼﻗﺎﺕ ﺑﺎ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺳﻌﺪ‪10...............................................................................................‬‬
‫ﺗﺎﺳﻮﻋﺎ‪12.............................................................................................‬‬
‫ﺍﻭﻟﻴﻦ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻥ ﺟﻨﮕﻲ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ )ﻉ(‪12....................................................................................‬‬
‫ﺻﺒﺢ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ‪14...................................................................................‬‬
‫ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺷﻤﺮ‪16...............................................................................................................‬‬
‫ﺳﺨﻨﺮﺍﻧﻲ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ )ﻉ( ‪16..............................................................................................‬‬
‫ﺁﻏﺎﺯ ﺟﻨﮓ‪18............................................................................................................‬‬
‫ﻣﻤﻨﻮﻋﻴﺖ ﺟﻨﮓ ﺗﻦ ﺑﻪ ﺗﻦ‪18.........................................................................................‬‬
‫ﺣﻤﻼﺕﻣﺠﺪﺩﺳﻮﺍﺭﻩﻧﻈﺎﻡ‪20...........................................................................................‬‬
‫ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ )ﻉ(‪22...............................................................................................‬‬
‫ﻧﻴﻤﻪ ﺭﻭﺯ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ‪24.....................................................................................................‬‬
‫ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ‪26......................................................................................‬‬ ‫ﻇﻬﺮ‬
‫ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﺯ ﻧﻤﺎﺯ‪26...............................................................................................................‬‬
‫ﺳﻮﺧﺘﻦ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﻫﺎ‪28.....................................................................................................‬‬
‫ﺣﻤﻼﺕ ﺷﻤﺮ‪28..............................................................................................................‬‬
‫ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ‪30.........................................................................‬‬ ‫ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﺯ ﻇﻬﺮ‬
‫ﺟﻮﺍﻧﺎﻥ ﺑﻨﻲ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ‪32.....................................................................................................‬‬
‫ﻛﻤﻴﻦ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﻛﺒﺮ‪34....................................................................................‬‬
‫ﺟﺎﻣﻲ ﺍﺯ ﺩﺳﺖ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ )ﺹ(‪34...........................................................................‬‬
‫ﻣﺎﻩ ﭘﺎﺭﻩ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ‪38.......................................................................................................‬‬
‫ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺷﺮﻳﻌﻪ‪38.................................................................................................‬‬
‫ﻛﻤﻴﻦ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺩﺳﺘﺎﻥ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ(‪40.........................................................................‬‬
‫ﺗﻴﺮﻱ ﺑﺮ ﻣﺸﻚ‪42.......................................................................................................‬‬
‫ﻭﺩﺍﻉ ﺳﭙﻪ ﺳﺎﻻﺭﺍﻥ‪44..................................................................................................‬‬
‫ﻧﻔﻮﺫ ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﻪ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ‪46..........................................................................................‬‬
‫ﺣﻤﻼﺕ ﭘﻲ ﺩﺭ ﭘﻲ ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ‪48..........................................................................................‬‬
‫ﺟﻨﮓ ﺩﺭ ﻣﻴﺎﻧﻪ ﻣﻴﺪﺍﻥ‪50...............................................................................................‬‬
‫ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ‪52....................................................................................‬‬ ‫ﻋﺼﺮ‬
‫ﺗﺎ ﺁﺧﺮﻳﻦ ﻧﻔﺲ‪54........................................................................................................‬‬
‫ﺛﺎﺭﺍﷲ‪56.....................................................................................................................‬‬
‫ﺁﺧﺮﻳﻦ ﻟﺤﻈﺎﺕ‪58........................................................................................................‬‬
‫ﺩﻫﻢ‪60.......................................................................................‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ‬
‫ﻏﺮﺑﺖ ﻋﺘﺮﺕ‬
‫‪ ...‬ﻭ ﭘﻴﺸﺘﺎﺯﺍﻥ‪ ،‬ﭘﻴﺸﺘﺎﺯﺍﻥ‪ ،‬ﺍﻳﻨﺎﻥ ﻫﻤﺎﻥ ﻣﻘﺮﺑﺎﻧﻨﺪ‪ ،‬ﺩﺭ ﺑﻬﺸﺘﻬﺎﻱ ﻧﻌﻴﻢ‪ ،‬ﺑﺴﻴﺎﺭﻱ ﺍﺯ ﻣﺘﻘﺪﻣﻴﻦ ﻭ ﺍﻧﺪﻛﻲ ﺷﺎﻥ ﺍﺯ ﻣﺘﺎﺧﺮﺍﻥ ﻫﺴﺘﻨﺪ‪.....‬‬
‫ﺗﺮﺟﻤﻪ ﺁﻳﺎﺕ ‪ 10‬ﺗﺎ ‪ 14‬ﺍﺯ ﺳﻮﺭﻩ ﻭﺍﻗﻌﻪ‬

‫ﻣﺮﺩﻡ ﻣﻤﺎﻟﻚ ﺍﺳﻼﻣﻲ ﺣﻠﻮﻝ ﺳﺎﻝ ‪ 61‬ﻫﺠﺮﻱ ﻗﻤﺮﻱ ﺭﺍ ﺟﺸﻦ ﮔﺮﻓﺘﻪ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﻭﻗﺘﻲ ﺳﭙﻴﺪﻩ ﺧﻮﺭﺷﻴﺪ ﺩﺭ ﺍﻓﻖ ﻛﺮﺑﻼ‪ ،‬ﺩﻫﻤﻴﻦ ﺭﻭﺯ ﺳﺎﻝ ﺭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﺁﺭﺍﻣﻲ ﺭﻭﺷﻦ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩ‪....‬‬
‫‪...‬ﻓﺮﺯﻧﺪﺍﻥ ﻭ ﻧﻮﺍﺩﮔﺎﻥ ﺩﺧﺘﺮ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ)ﺹ( ﻭ ﻫﻤﺮﺍﻫﺎﻧﺸﺎﻥ ﺩﺭ ﻣﺤﺎﺻﺮﻩ ﺑﻴﺶ ﺍﺯ ‪ 20000‬ﻫﺰﺍﺭ ﺟﻨﮕﺠﻮﻱ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻳﺰﻳﺪ‪ ،‬ﺁﻣﺎﺩﻩ‬
‫ﺷﻬﺎﺩﺕ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪...‬‬
‫‪...‬ﻫﻨﮕﺎﻣﻲ ﻛﻪ ﺧﻮﺭﺷﻴﺪ ﺩﻫﻤﻴﻦ ﺭﻭﺯ ﺳﺎﻝ ‪ 61‬ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩ‪ ،‬ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺯﻳﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺑﺪﻳﻦ)ﻉ(‪ ،‬ﺑﺎﻧﻮﺍﻥ ﻭ ﻛﻮﺩﻛﺎﻥ ﻫﺎﺷﻤﻲ‪ ،‬ﺍﺳﻴﺮ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ‬
‫ﻳﺰﻳﺪ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺁﻧﺎﻥ)ﻉ( ﺗﻨﻬﺎ ﺑﺎﺯﻣﺎﻧﺪﮔﺎﻥ ﻋﺘﺮﺕ ﭘﻴﺎﻣﺒﺮ ﺧﺪﺍ)ﺹ( ﺑﺮ ﺭﻭﻱ ﺯﻣﻴﻦ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﺎﻗﺮ)ﻉ( ﺁﻧﺮﻭﺯ ﻛﻮﺩﻛﻲ ﺧﺮﺩ ﺳﺎﻝ ﻭ ﺑﻪ‬
‫ﻫﻤﺮﺍﻩ ﻛﻮﺩﻛﺎﻥ ﺑﻨﻲ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﺍﺳﻴﺮ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻳﺰﻳﺪ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬

‫ﺩﺍﺳﺘﺎﻥ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ‬
‫ﺍﺯ ﺁﻥ ﭘﺲ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺯﻳﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺑﺪﻳﻦ)ﻉ( ﭘﻴﺸﻮﺍﻱ ﻣﺴﻠﻴﻤﻦ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ ﺗﺎ ﺍﻳﻨﻜﻪ ﺧﻮﺩ ﻧﻴﺰ ﺑﻪ ﺷﻬﺎﺩﺕ ﺭﺳﻴﺪﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺍﺯ ﺑﻴﺎﻧﺎﺕ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﺍﺳﺖ‬
‫ﻛﻪ‪:‬‬
‫ﻫﺮ ﺭﻭﺯ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ ﻭ ﻫﺮ ﺳﺮﺯﻣﻴﻦ ﻛﺮﺑﻼﺳﺖ‪.‬‬
‫ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﻭ ﺳﺎﻳﺮ ﺑﺎﺯﻣﺎﻧﺪﮔﺎﻥ‪ ،‬ﺩﺍﺳﺘﺎﻥ ﻧﺒﺮﺩ ﺭﻭﺯ ﺩﻫﻢ ﺭﺍ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﻫﻤﻪ ﻣﺮﺩﻡ‪ ،‬ﺯﻧﺪﻩ ﻧﮕﺎﻩ ﺩﺍﺷﺘﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺑﻪ ﺑﺮﻛﺖ ﺗﻼﺵ ﺁﻧﺎﻥ‪ ،‬ﺍﻣﺮﻭﺯ ﺩﺭ ﻫﺮ ﮔﻮﺷﻪ ﻛﺮﻩ ﺯﻣﻴﻦ‪ ،‬ﻫﺮ ﺳﺎﻝ ﺩﻩ ﻫﺎ ﻣﻴﻠﻴﻮﻥ ﻧﻔﺮ‪ ،‬ﺩﺭ ﻣﺮﺍﺳﻢ ﺳﺎﻟﺮﻭﺯ ﺩﻫﻢ ﻣﺤﺮﻡ‪ ،‬ﺩﺍﺳﺘﺎﻥ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ ﺭﺍ‬
‫ﻣﺮﻭﺭ ﻣﻲ ﻛﻨﻨﺪ‪.‬‬

‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪1‬‬


‫ﺁﻏﺎﺯ ﺩﺍﺳﺘﺎﻥ‪ ،‬ﺑﻨﺪﮔﻲ ﺧﺪﺍﻭﻧﺪ ﻋﺰ ﻭﺟﻞ ﻭ ﺷﺮﺡ ﻭﻗﺎﻳﻊ ﺁﻥ‪ ،‬ﺩﺍﺳﺘﺎﻥ ﺍﺧﻼﺹ ﺍﺳﺖ‪.‬‬
‫ﭘﺎﻳﺎﻥ ﺩﺍﺳﺘﺎﻥ‪ ،‬ﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﻗﺮﺏ ﺍﻟﻬﻲ ﻭ ﺑﻬﺸﺖ ﻧﻌﻴﻢ ﺍﺳﺖ‪.‬‬

‫ﺍﻗﻴﺎﻧﻮﺱ ﺑﻴﻜﺮﺍﻥ‬
‫ﺑﺎﺭﺍﻥ ﻛﻠﻤﺎﺕ ﻗﺮﺁﻥ‪ ،‬ﺩﺭ ﺑﻠﻨﺪﻳﻬﺎﻱ ﺍﻧﺪﻳﺸﻪ ﻣﻮﻣﻨﺎﻥ‪ ،‬ﺟﺮﻳﺎﻥ ﺯﻧﺪﮔﻲ ﺗﻚ ﺗﻚ ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﺭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﺭﻭﺩﺧﺎﻧﻪ ﻛﺮﺑﻼ ﻛﺸﺎﻧﻴﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﻫﻤﺮﺍﻫﻲ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﺑﺎ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ( ﺳﻴﻞ ﺧﺮﻭﺷﺎﻥ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ ﺭﺍ ﺟﺎﺭﻱ ﺳﺎﺧﺖ‪ .‬ﺍﻳﻦ ﺳﻴﻞ ﭘﻠﻴﺪﻱ ﺍﺩﻋﺎ ﻭ ﺧﺎﺷﺎﻙ ﻣﺪﻋﻲ ﺭﺍ ﺍﺯ‬
‫ﺧﺎﻙ ﺯﻣﻴﻦ ﺷﺴﺖ ﻭ ﺁﻧﺮﺍ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺭﺷﺪ ﺍﻧﺪﻳﺸﻪ ﻫﺎﻱ ﺁﺯﺍﺩ ﭘﺮﺑﺎﺭ ﻧﻤﻮﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﺍﺯ ﺁﻧﺮﻭﺯ ﺍﻳﻦ ﺳﻴﻞ ﻫﺮ ﺭﻭﺯ ﻭ ﺩﺭ ﻫﺮ ﺟﺎ ﺩﺭ ﺟﺮﻳﺎﻥ ﺍﺳﺖ‪ ،‬ﻫﻤﭽﻨﺎﻥ ﺍﻧﺪﻳﺸﻪ ﻫﺎﻱ ﻣﺮﺩﻡ ﺭﺍ ﺳﻴﺮﺍﺏ ﻣﻲ ﻛﻨﺪ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻗﻴﺎﻧﻮﺳﻲ ﺑﻴﻜﺮﺍﻥ‬
‫ﻣﻲ ﺭﻳﺰﺩ ﻛﻪ ﺳﺎﺣﻠﺶ ﺩﺭ ﻛﻨﺎﺭ ﻫﻤﻪ ﺧﺸﻜﻲ ﻫﺎﺳﺖ‪ .‬ﺟﻮﻳﻨﺪﮔﺎﻥ ﺍﺯ ﻫﺮ ﺳﺎﺣﻠﻲ ﻭﺍﺭﺩ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺩﺭ ﺍﻋﻤﺎﻗﺶ ﻏﻮﻃﻪ ﺯﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺭﺍﻩ ﭘﻴﻮﻧﺪ ﺑﻪ‬
‫ﺍﺑﺪﻳﺖ ﺭﺍ ﻳﺎﻓﺘﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺍﻱ ﺟﻮﻳﻨﺪﮔﺎﻥ ﺍﺑﺪﻳﺖ‪ ،‬ﻣﻲ ﺗﻮﺍﻧﻴﺪ ﺍﺯ ﻫﻤﻴﻨﺠﺎ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻋﻤﺎﻕ ﺍﻳﻦ ﺍﻗﻴﺎﻧﻮﺱ ﺑﻴﻜﺮﺍﻥ ﺑﺮﻭﻳﺪ‪.‬‬

‫ﺁﻏﺎﺯ ﻏﺮﺑﺖ ﻋﺘﺮﺕ‬


‫‪...‬ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ)ﺹ( ﺁﺧﺮﻳﻦ ﺍﺣﻴﺎء ﻛﻨﻨﺪﻩ ﺁﺋﻴﻦ ﺍﺑﺮﺍﻫﻴﻤﻲ)ﻉ(‪ ،‬ﺍﺯ ﻃﺮﻑ ﭘﺮﻭﺭﺩﮔﺎﺭ ﺟﻬﺎﻧﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﺮﮔﺰﻳﺪﻩ ﺷﺪ‪ .‬ﻫﻨﮕﺎﻣﻲ ﻛﻪ ﺍﺯ ﺯﻧﺪﮔﻲ ﺑﺮ‬
‫ﺭﻭﻱ ﺯﻣﻴﻦ ﺩﺳﺖ ﻣﻲ ﺷﺴﺖ‪ ،‬ﻛﺘﺎﺏ ﺧﺪﺍﻭﻧﺪ ﻭ ﻋﺘﺮﺕ ﺧﻮﻳﺶ ﺭﺍ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺍﺩﺍﻣﻪ ﺭﺍﻫﺶ‪ ،‬ﺑﺮ ﺟﺎﻱ ﻧﻬﺎﺩ‪ .‬ﻫﻨﻮﺯ ﺩﻭ ﻣﺎﻫﻲ ﺍﺯ ﺧﺎﻛﺴﭙﺎﺭﻱ‬
‫ﺭﺳﻮﻝ ﺧﺪﺍﻭﻧﺪ)ﺹ( ﻧﻤﻲ ﮔﺬﺷﺖ ﻛﻪ ﺩﺧﺘﺮﺷﺎﻥ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺯﻫﺮﺍ)ﺱ( ﺑﻪ ﺷﻬﺎﺩﺕ ﺭﺳﻴﺪﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺁﻥ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻣﺮﺩﻡ ﻣﺪﻳﻨﻪ ﺭﺍ ﻻﻳﻖ ﺳﻮﮔﻮﺍﺭﻱ‬
‫ﺩﺭ ﺧﺎﻛﺴﭙﺎﺭﻱ ﺧﻮﻳﺶ ﻧﺪﻳﺪﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺑﺎ ﺍﺧﺘﻔﺎﻱ ﻣﺮﻗﺪ ﺧﻮﻳﺶ‪ ،‬ﻫﻤﮕﺎﻥ ﺭﺍ ﺍﺯ ﺳﺘﻢ ﻭ ﮔﻤﺮﺍﻫﻲ ﻣﺮﺩﻡ ﺁﻥ ﺩﻳﺎﺭ‪ ،‬ﺁﮔﺎﻩ ﻧﻤﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺩﺭ ﺳﺎﻝ ﭼﻬﻠﻢ‬
‫ﻫﺠﺮﻱ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﻋﻠﻲ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ ﺷﻤﺸﻴﺮ ﺟﻬﻞ ﺷﻬﻴﺪ ﻭ ﻣﺎﻧﻨﺪ ﻫﻤﺴﺮ ﮔﺮﺍﻣﻴﺸﺎﻥ‪ ،‬ﺩﺭ ﺧﻔﺎ ﺑﻪ ﺧﺎﻙ ﺳﭙﺮﺩﻩ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺩﺭ ﺁﻥ ﺭﻭﺯﮔﺎﺭ ﺑﺠﺰ‬
‫ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻜﺎﻥ‪ ،‬ﻛﺴﻲ ﺍﺯ ﻣﺮﻗﺪ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﺍﻃﻼﻉ ﻧﺪﺍﺷﺖ‪ .‬ﺩﺭ ﺳﺎﻝ ﭘﻨﺠﺎﻫﻢ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻦ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ ﺷﻬﺎﺩﺕ ﺭﺳﻴﺪﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺩﻭﺭﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻣﺖ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ‬
‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ)ﻉ( ﺁﻏﺎﺯ ﺷﺪ‪.‬‬

‫‪2‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻗﻴﺎﻡ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ(‬
‫ﺩﺭ ﺳــﺎﻝ ‪ 60‬ﻫﺠﺮﻱ ﻗﻤﺮﻱ‪ ،‬ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴــﻴﻦ)ﻉ( ﻣﺤﺒﻮﺏ ﺗﺮﻳﻦ ﻣﺮﺩ ﺟﺰﻳﺮﻩ ﺍﻟﻌﺮﺏ ﺑﻮﺩ‪ .‬ﻓﺘﻨﻪ ﺍﻱ ﻛﻪ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﻠﻲ)ﻉ( ﺍﺯ ﺁﻥ‬
‫ﺳﺨﻦ ﻣﻲ ﮔﻔﺖ‪ ،‬ﺳﺎﻟﻬﺎ ﺑﻮﺩ ﻓﻜﺮ ﻣﺮﺩﻡ ﻣﺴﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﺭﺍ ﺁﻟﻮﺩﻩ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﺩﺷﻤﻨﺎﻥ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ( ﻫﻤﭽﻮﻥ ﺩﺷﻤﻨﺎﻥ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻓﺎﻃﻤﻪ)ﺱ(‪ ،‬ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﻋﻠﻲ)ﻉ( ﻭ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻦ)ﻉ(‪ ،‬ﻧﻤﺎﺯ ﻣﻲ ﮔﺰﺍﺭﺩﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺭﻭﺯﻩ ﻣﻲ ﮔﺮﻓﺘﻨﺪ‬
‫ﻭ ﻗﺮﺁﻥ ﻣﻲ ﺧﻮﺍﻧﺪﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺩﻭ ﺭﻧﮕﻲ ﺳﺮﺍﺳﺮ ﺟﺎﻣﻌﻪ ﺍﺳﻼﻣﻲ ﺭﺍ ﻓﺮﺍ ﮔﺮﻓﺘﻪ ﺑﻮﺩ‪.‬‬

‫ﺁﻏﺎﺯ ﺩﻭﺭﻩ ﺳﻠﻄﻨﺖ ﺍﻣﻮﻱ‬


‫ﺗﺎ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﺯ ﻳﺰﻳﺪ ﭘﺴﺮ ﻣﻌﺎﻭﻳﻪ‪ ،‬ﺧﻼﻓﺖ ﺍﺳﻼﻣﻲ ﺑﺼﻮﺭﺕ ﻣﻮﺭﻭﺛﻲ ﻧﺒﻮﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﻣﻄﺎﺑﻖ ﭘﻴﻤﺎﻥ ﻧﺎﻣﻪ ﺍﻱ ﻛﻪ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻦ)ﻉ( ﻭ ﻣﻌﺎﻭﻳﻪ ﺍﻣﻀﺎء ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﻣﻌﺎﻭﻳﻪ ﻧﻤﻲ ﺗﻮﺍﻧﺴﺖ ﭘﺲ ﺍﺯ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺟﺎﻧﺸﻴﻨﻲ ﺑﻨﺸﺎﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺧﻼﻓﺖ ﭘﺲ‬
‫ﺍﺯ ﺍﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻦ)ﻉ( ﻭ ﺳﭙﺲ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ( ﻭﺍﮔﺬﺍﺭ ﻣﻲ ﺷﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﭘﻴﻤﺎﻥ ﺷﻜﻨﻲ ﻣﻌﺎﻭﻳﻪ ﻭ ﺗﺎﺟﮕﺬﺍﺭﻱ ﻳﺰﻳﺪ ﺩﺭ ﺳﺎﻝ ‪ 60‬ﻫﺠﺮﻱ‪ ،‬ﺑﻪ ﻣﻨﺰﻟﻪ ﺁﻏﺎﺯ ﺳﻠﺴﻠﻪ ﻫﺎﻱ ﺳﻠﻄﻨﺘﻲ ﺣﺎﻛﻤﺎﻥ ﺍﺳﻼﻣﻲ ﺑﻮﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﻣﻬﺮ ﺗﺎﺋﻴﺪ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ( ﺗﻨﻬﺎ ﭼﻴﺰﻱ ﺑﻮﺩ ﻛﻪ ﻳﺰﻳﺪ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺳﻠﻄﻪ ﻣﻄﻠﻖ ﻭ ﺗﺪﺍﻭﻡ ﺳﻠﺴﻪ ﭘﺎﺩﺷﺎﻫﻲ ﺍﻣﻮﻱ ﻧﻴﺎﺯ ﺩﺍﺷﺖ‪ .‬ﺗﻼﺵ ﻳﺰﻳﺪ ﺑﺎ ﺗﻬﺪﻳﺪ‬
‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ( ﺩﺭ ﻣﺪﻳﻨﻪ ﺁﻏﺎﺯ ﺷﺪ‪ ،‬ﻭﻟﻲ ﻫﻴﭽﮕﺎﻩ ﺑﻪ ﻧﺘﻴﺠﻪ ﻧﺮﺳﻴﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﭘﺲ ﺍﺯ ﺑﺮﺭﺳــﻲ ﺍﻭﺿﺎﻉ ﻭ ﺯﻳﺎﺭﺕ ﻣﺮﻗﺪ ﭘﻴﺎﻣﺒﺮ)ﺹ(‪ ،‬ﺑﻪ ﻫﻤﺮﺍﻩ ﺍﻫﻞ ﺑﻴﺖ ﻭ ﺳــﺎﻳﺮ ﻫﻤﺮﺍﻫﺎﻥ‪ ،‬ﺩﺭ ‪ 27‬ﺭﺟﺐ ﺷﺒﺎﻧﻪ ﺍﺯ ﻣﺪﻳﻨﻪ ﺑﻪ‬
‫ﺳــﻤﺖ ﻣﻜﻪ ﻋﺎﺯﻡ ﺷــﺪﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﭘﺲ ﺍﺯ ﭼﻬﺎﺭ ﻣﺎﻩ ﻭ ﺍﻧﺪﻱ ﺍﻗﺎﻣﺖ ﺩﺭ ﻣﻜﻪ ﻭ ﺍﺻﺮﺍﺭ ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﻪ ﺑﻴﻌﺖ ﺑﺎ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻋﻠﻴﻪ ﻳﺰﻳﺪ‪ ،‬ﻭ ﺗﺎﻳﻴﺪ ﻓﺮﺳﺘﺎﺩﻩ‬
‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻳﻌﻨﻲ ﻣﺴﻠﻢ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻘﻴﻞ ﺩﺭ ﻣﻮﺭﺩ ﺑﻴﻌﺖ ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ‪ ،‬ﻛﺎﺭﻭﺍﻥ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺭﻭﺯ ﻫﺸﺘﻢ ﺫﻱ ﺍﻟﺤﺠﻪ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﺯ ﭘﺎﻳﺎﻥ ﻣﺮﺍﺳﻢ ﺣﺞ‪ ،‬ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ‬
‫ﺑﻪ ﺣﺮﻛﺖ ﺩﺭ ﺁﻣﺪﻩ ﻭ ﭼﻬﺎﺭ ﻫﻔﺘﻪ ﺑﻌﺪ‪ ،‬ﺩﺭ ﺭﻭﺯ ﺩﻭﻡ ﻣﺤﺮﻡ ﺳﺎﻝ ‪ 61‬ﺑﻪ ﻛﺮﺑﻼ ﺭﺳﻴﺪ‪) .‬ﺩﺭ ﺗﻘﻮﻳﻢ ﻗﻤﺮﻱ‪ ،‬ﻣﺤﺮﻡ ﺍﻭﻟﻴﻦ ﻣﺎﻩ ﺳﺎﻝ ﺍﺳﺖ(‬
‫ﺩﺭ ﺍﻳﻦ ﻭﺍﻗﻌﻪ ﺑﺰﺭگ‪ ،‬ﺍﻣﺎﻡ )ﻉ( ﻭ ﻫﻤﺮﺍﻫﺎﻧﺸﺎﻥ ﺩﺭ ﺟﺮﻳﺎﻥ ﺭﻧﮕﺎﺭﻧﮓ ﺟﺎﻣﻌﻪ‪ ،‬ﺗﺎ ﺁﺧﺮﻳﻦ ﻧﻔﺲ‪ ،‬ﻳﻚ ﺭﻧﮕﻲ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺭﺍ ﺣﻔﻆ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬

‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪3‬‬


‫ﭘﺎﺩﮔﺎﻥ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ‬
‫ﺷﻬﺮ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺩﺭ ﺍﻃﺮﺍﻑ ﻳﻚ ﭘﺎﺩﮔﺎﻥ ﻧﻈﺎﻣﻲ ﺑﺰﺭگ ﺷﻜﻞ ﮔﺮﻓﺘﻪ ﺑﻮﺩ‪ .‬ﺑﻴﺸﺘﺮ ﻣﺮﺩﻡ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﻭ ﻗﺒﺎﻳﻞ ﺍﻃﺮﺍﻑ ﺁﻥ‪ ،‬ﻧﻈﺎﻣﻲ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺷﺎﻳﺪ ﺍﻧﮕﻴﺰﻩ‬
‫ﺍﺻﻠﻲ ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﺩﺭ ﺍﺷﺘﻌﺎﻝ ﺁﺗﺶ ﺟﻨﮓ ﺑﺎ ﻳﺰﻳﺪ‪ ،‬ﻛﺴﺐ ﺩﺭﺁﻣﺪ ﺍﺯ ﻃﺮﻳﻖ ﻣﺎﻣﻮﺭﻳﺖ ﻫﺎﻱ ﻧﻈﺎﻣﻲ ﺣﺎﺻﻠﻪ ﺩﺭ ﭼﻨﻴﻦ ﺟﻨﮕﻲ ﺑﻮﺩ‪ .‬ﺍﮔﺮ ﺟﻨﮕﻲ‬
‫ﺩﺭ ﻣﻲ ﮔﺮﻓﺖ‪ ،‬ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﻣﻲ ﺗﻮﺍﻧﺴﺘﻨﺪ ﺍﺯ ﺣﺮﻓﻪ ﺧﻮﻳﺶ ﺑﻬﺮﻩ ﺍﻱ ﺑﺒﺮﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺧﻮﺍﻩ ﺩﺭ ﺟﻨﺎﺡ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ( ﺑﺎﺷﻨﺪ ﻭ ﺧﻮﺍﻩ ﺩﺭ ﺟﻨﺎﺡ ﻳﺰﻳﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺑــﺎ ﺍﻳــﻦ ﺍﺣــﻮﺍﻝ‪ ،‬ﺍﮔــﺮ ﺍﻣــﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑــﻪ ﻛﻮﻓــﻪ ﻣــﻲ ﺭﺳــﻴﺪﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﻛﺎﺭ ﺑــﺮﺍﻱ ﺣﻜﻮﻣــﺖ ﻳﺰﻳــﺪ ﺑﺴــﻴﺎﺭ ﺩﺷــﻮﺍﺭ ﻣــﻲ ﺷــﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺩﺭ ﻧﺘﻴﺠﻪ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺯﻳﺎﺩ ﻭ ﺳﻠﻄﻨﺖ ﻃﻠﺒﺎﻥ ﺑﺎ ﺗﻤﺎﻡ ﻗﻮﺍ ﺩﺭ ﺑﺮﺍﺑﺮ ﻫﻮﺍ ﺧﻮﺍﻫﺎﻥ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ( ﺻﻒ ﺑﺴﺘﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺍﺑﺘﺪﺍ ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ ﺭﺍ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﻣﺪﺗﻲ ﺳﺮﻛﻮﺏ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺳﭙﺲ ﻫﻤﺮﺍﻩ ﺁﻧﺎﻥ ﺑﻪ ﺟﻨﮓ ﺑﺎ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ( ﺁﻣﺪﻧﺪ‪.‬‬

‫ﻭﺭﻭﺩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ ﻛﺮﺑﻼ‬


‫ﭼﻨﺪ ﺭﻭﺯﻱ ﺑﻮﺩ ﻛﻪ ﺣﺮ ﺑﺎ ﻫﺰﺍﺭ ﻧﻔﺮ ﺟﻨﮕﺠﻮﻱ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﻩ ﻧﻈﺎﻡ‪ ،‬ﻣﺎﻧﻊ ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻚ ﺷﺪﻥ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ ﺷﻬﺮ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﻣﻲ ﺷﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﭘﺲ ﻣﺴﻴﺮ ﺣﺮﻛﺖ ﻛﺎﺭﻭﺍﻥ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺷﻤﺎﻝ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﻣﻨﺤﺮﻑ ﺷﺪ‪.‬‬

‫ﺷﻜﻞ ﺷﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ - 1‬ﺣﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻳﺰﻳﺪ ﺭﻳﺎﺣﻲ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻧﺪﻩ‬


‫ﻳﻚ ﻫﺰﺍﺭ ﻧﻔﺮ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﻩ ﻧﻈﺎﻡ ﻭ ﻣﺎﻣﻮﺭ ﻣﺘﻮﻗﻒ ﻧﻤﻮﺩﻥ‬
‫ﻛﺎﺭﻭﺍﻥ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﻮﺩ‪ .‬ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﺟﻨﮕﺠﻮﻳﺎﻥ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ(‬
‫ﺑﺮﺍﺣﺘﻲ ﻣﻲ ﺗﻮﺍﻧﺴﺘﻨﺪ ﺑﺮ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ‪ 1000‬ﻧﻔﺮﻩ ﺣﺮ‬
‫ﭼﻴﺮﻩ ﺷﻮﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺍﻣﺎ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺭﻏﻢ ﺍﻳﻨﻜﻪ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺍﺯ ﺍﻳﻦ‬
‫ﻣﻮﺿﻮﻉ ﺍﻃﻤﻴﻨﺎﻥ ﻛﺎﻣﻞ ﺩﺍﺷﺘﻨﺪ‪ ،‬ﻣﻲ ﺧﻮﺍﺳﺘﻨﺪ ﻛﻪ‬
‫ﺁﻏﺎﺯ ﻛﻨﻨﺪﻩ ﻫﻴﭻ ﺟﻨﮕﻲ ﺑﺎ ﺑﺮﺩﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﻣﺴﻠﻤﺎﻥ ﺧﻮﺩ‬
‫ﻧﺒﺎﺷﻨﺪ‪.‬‬

‫‪4‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪5‬‬
‫ﺷﻨﺒﻪ ﺩﻭﻡ ﻣﺤﺮﻡ ﺳﺎﻝ ‪ 61‬ﻫﺠﺮﻱ ﻗﻤﺮﻱ )ﺳﺎﻝ ‪ 59‬ﻫﺠﺮﻱ ﺷﻤﺴﻲ( ﻛﺎﺭﻭﺍﻥ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ( ﺩﺭ ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻜﻲ ﺷﺎﺧﻪ ﺍﻱ ﺍﺯ ﺭﻭﺩ‬
‫ﻓﺮﺍﺕ ﻭ ﺩﺭ ﻣﻨﻄﻘﻪ ﻛﺮﺑﻼ ﺍﺭﺩﻭ ﺯﺩ‪ .‬ﺑﺎﻧﻮﺍﻥ ﺑﺰﺭﮔﻮﺍﺭ ﺑﻨﻲ ﻫﺎﺷﻤﻲ ﻛﻪ ﺩﺭ ﻛﺮﺑﻼ ﺣﻀﻮﺭ ﺩﺍﺷﺘﻨﺪ‪ ،‬ﻋﺒﺎﺭﺗﻨﺪ ﺍﺯ ﺣﻀﺮﺍﺕ ﺯﻳﻨﺐ)ﺱ(‪ ،‬ﺍﻡ‬
‫ﻛﻠﺜﻮﻡ)ﺱ(‪ ،‬ﺭﺑﺎﺏ)ﺱ( )ﻫﻤﺴﺮ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻭ ﻣﺎﺩﺭ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﺻﻐﺮ)ﻉ(( ﻓﺎﻃﻤﻪ ﻛﻮﭼﻚ ﻭ ﺳﻜﻴﻨﻪ)ﺱ( ﺩﺧﺘﺮﺍﻥ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻭ ﻓﺎﻃﻤﻪ‬
‫ﺩﺧﺘﺮ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻦ)ﻉ( ﻛﻪ ﻫﻤﺴﺮ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺳﺠﺎﺩ)ﻉ( ﺑﻮﺩ‪ .‬ﺑﺠﺰ ﺑﺎﻧﻮﺍﻥ ﺑﻨﻲ ﻫﺎﺷﻤﻲ‪ ،‬ﻛﻮﺩﻛﺎﻥ‪ ،‬ﻛﻨﻴﺰﺍﻥ ﻭ ﻏﻼﻣﺎﻥ‪ ،‬ﺯﻧﻲ ﺑﻪ ﻧﺎﻡ ﺍﻡ ﻭﻫﺐ ﺩﺭ‬
‫ﺍﺭﺩﻭﮔﺎﻩ ﺑﻮﺩ‪ .‬ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﻧﻴﺰ ﺑﻪ ﺍﺗﻔﺎﻕ ﻫﻤﺴﺮﺷﺎﻥ ﺩﺭ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ ﺷﻬﻴﺪ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ ﺑﺎﻗﺮ)ﻉ( ﭼﻬﺎﺭ ﺳﺎﻟﻪ ﻧﻴﺰ ﺩﺭ ﻣﻴﺎﻥ ﻛﻮﺩﻛﺎﻥ ﻛﺮﺑﻼ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺣﺮ ﺩﺭ ﻣﻘﺎﺑﻞ ﺍﺭﺩﻭﮔﺎﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺍﺭﺩﻭ ﺯﺩ ﻭ ﮔﺰﺍﺭﺵ ﺭﻭﺯﺍﻧﻪ ﺍﺵ ﺭﺍ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺯﻳﺎﺩ ﻓﺮﺳﺘﺎﺩ‪.‬‬

‫ﺷﻜﻞ ﺷﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ – 2‬ﻧﻤﺎﺋﻲ ﻓﺮﺿﻲ ﺍﺯ ﺍﺭﺩﻭﮔﺎﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ(‬


‫ﺩﺭ ﺭﻭﺯ ﺩﻭﻡ ﻣﺤﺮﻡ‬

‫‪6‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪7‬‬
‫ﻣﺤﺎﺻﺮﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ(‬
‫ﺍﺑﻦ ﺯﻳﺎﺩ‪ ،‬ﻋﻤﺮ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﻫﻤﺮﺍﻩ ‪ 4000‬ﻧﻔﺮ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﻣﻘﺎﺑﻠﻪ ﺑﺎ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻓﺮﺳﺘﺎﺩ‪ .‬ﺑﺎ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﺣﺮ‪ ،‬ﺍﻛﻨﻮﻥ ‪ 5000‬ﺟﻨﮕﺠﻮ ﺩﺭ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻧﺪﻫﻲ ﻋﻤﺮ‬
‫ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻮﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﻋﻤﺮ ﺳﻌﺪ ﭘﻴﻜﻲ ﻓﺮﺳﺘﺎﺩ ﻭ ﺍﺯ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﭘﺮﺳﻴﺪ ﻛﻪ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﭼﻪ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻳﻦ ﻣﻨﻄﻘﻪ ﻭﺍﺭﺩ ﺷﺪﻩ ﺍﺳﺖ‪.‬‬
‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﭘﺎﺳﺦ ﺩﺍﺩﻧﺪ ﻛﻪ ﺑﻪ ﺧﺎﻃﺮ ﺩﻋﻮﺕ ﻭ ﺑﻴﻌﺖ ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻳﻨﺠﺎ ﺁﻣﺪﻩ ﻭ ﺍﮔﺮ ﺁﻧﺎﻥ ﭘﺸﻴﻤﺎﻥ ﺷﺪﻩ ﺍﻧﺪ ﺑﻪ ﺷﻬﺮ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺑﺎﺯ ﺧﻮﺍﻫﻨﺪ‬
‫ﮔﺸﺖ‪.‬‬
‫ﻋﻤﺮ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺍﻳﻦ ﻣﻮﺿﻮﻉ ﺭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺯﻳﺎﺩ ﮔﺰﺍﺭﺵ ﻛﺮﺩ‪.‬‬

‫ﺭﺳﻴﺪﻥ ﺳﭙﺎﻫﻴﺎﻥ ﺟﺪﻳﺪ ﺑﻪ ﻛﺮﺑﻼ‬


‫ﺍﺑﻦ ﺯﻳﺎﺩ ﻣﻄﻤﺌﻦ ﺑﻮﺩ ﻛﻪ ‪ 5000‬ﺟﻨﮕﺠﻮ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﻣﻘﺎﺑﻠﻪ ﺑﺎ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﻳﺎﺭﺍﻥ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻛﺎﻓﻲ ﻧﻴﺴﺖ‪ .‬ﺍﻟﺒﺘﻪ ﺍﻳﻦ ﻣﻮﺿﻮﻉ ﺩﺭ ﻧﺘﺎﻳﺞ ﺟﻨﮓ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ‬
‫ﻛﺎﻣﻼ ﺭﻭﺷﻦ ﺷﺪ‪ .‬ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩ ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻥ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﻛﻪ ﺍﺯ ﭘﺎﻱ ﺩﺭﺁﻣﺪﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﻧﺸﺎﻥ ﻣﻲ ﺩﻫﺪ ﺩﺭ ﺻﻮﺭﺗﻴﻜﻪ ﺟﻨﮓ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ ﺑﺎ ﺍﻳﻦ ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩ ﺳﭙﺎﻫﻴﺎﻥ‬
‫ﻳﺰﻳﺪﻱ ﺁﻏﺎﺯ ﻣﻲ ﺷﺪ‪ ،‬ﺣﺘﻤﺎ ﺑﻪ ﺷﻜﺴﺖ ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ ﻣﻲ ﺍﻧﺠﺎﻣﻴﺪ‪ .‬ﺩﺭ ﻧﺘﻴﺠﻪ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺯﻳﺎﺩ ﺩﺭ ﻣﺴﺠﺪ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺳﺨﻨﺮﺍﻧﻲ ﻭ ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ ﺭﺍ ﺑﺎ ﭘﻮﻝ ﻭ‬
‫ﺗﻬﺪﻳﺪ ﺟﻤﻊ ﻛﺮﺩ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺻﻮﺭﺕ ﮔﺮﻭﻫﻬﺎﻱ ﺑﺰﺭگ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﭘﻴﻮﺳﺘﻦ ﺑﻪ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺣﺮﻛﺖ ﺩﺍﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﺭﻭﺯ ﺩﻭﺷﻨﺒﻪ ﺷﺸﻢ ﻣﺤﺮﻡ ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩ ﺟﻨﮕﺠﻮﻳﺎﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺍﺯ ﻣﺮﺯ ‪ 13000‬ﻧﻔﺮ ﮔﺬﺷﺘﻪ ﻭ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻥ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺯﻳﺎﺩ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺁﻏﺎﺯ ﻋﻤﻠﻴﺎﺕ ﺟﻨﮕﻲ ﺑﻪ‬
‫ﺍﻭ ﺍﺑﻼﻍ ﺷﺪﻩ ﺑﻮﺩ‪.‬‬

‫ﺷﻜﻞ ﺷﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -3‬ﻧﻤﺎﻱ ﻓﺮﺿﻲ ﺍﺯ ﺍﺭﺩﻭﮔﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ‬


‫ﻛﻪ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﻫﺎﻱ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻧﺪﻫﻲ ﺩﺭ ﻣﻴﺎﻧﻪ‪ ،‬ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﻫﺎﻱ‬
‫ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻥ ﺩﺭ ﺍﻃﺮﺍﻑ ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﻭ ﺍﺻﻄﺒﻠﻬﺎﻱ ﻣﻮﻗﺘﻲ‬
‫ﺍﺳﺒﻬﺎ ﺩﺭ ﻛﻨﺎﺭﻩ ﺍﺭﺩﻭﮔﺎﻩ ﺍﺳﺖ‪.‬‬

‫‪8‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪9‬‬
‫ﺟﻨﮕﺠﻮﻳﺎﻥ ﺑﻨﻲ ﺍﺳﺪ‬
‫ﺩﺭ ﻫﻤﻴﻦ ﺷﺐ ‪ 90‬ﺳﻮﺍﺭ ﺍﺯ ﻃﺎﻳﻔﻪ ﺑﻨﻲ ﺍﺳﺪ ﺑﺎ ﺣﺒﻴﺐ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻣﻈﺎﻫﺮ ﻫﻤﺮﺍﻩ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﻋﻤﺮ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﺎ ﺧﺒﺮ ﺷﺪ ﻭ ‪ 400‬ﺳﻮﺍﺭ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺟﻠﻮﮔﻴﺮﻱ ﺍﺯ‬
‫ﭘﻴﻮﺳﺘﻦ ﺁﻧﺎﻥ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻓﺮﺳﺘﺎﺩ‪ .‬ﻫﻤﺮﺍﻫﺎﻥ ﺣﺒﻴﺐ ﺑﺎ ﺁﻧﺎﻥ ﺩﺭﮔﻴﺮ ﻭ ﺳﭙﺲ ﻣﺘﻔﺮﻕ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ ﻭ ﻫﻤﺎﻥ ﺷﺐ ﺑﺎ ﺧﺎﻧﻮﺍﺩﻩ ﺷﺎﻥ ﻛﻮچ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺑﻪ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻥ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺯﻳﺎﺩ‪ ،‬ﻫﻤﺎﻥ ‪ 400‬ﺳﻮﺍﺭ ﻛﻮﻓﻲ‪ ،‬ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﻣﺤﺎﻓﻈﺖ ﺍﺯ ﺁﺏ ﺷﺮﻳﻌﻪ ﻓﺮﺍﺕ ﻣﺎﻣﻮﺭ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ‪.‬‬

‫ﻳﺎﻓﺘﻦ ﺁﺏ ﺩﺭ ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻜﻲ ﺍﺭﺩﻭﮔﺎﻩ‬


‫ﺭﻭﺯ ‪ 7‬ﻣﺤﺮﻡ‪ ،‬ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺩﺭ ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻜﻲ ﺍﺭﺩﻭﮔﺎﻩ ﭼﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﭼﻜﻲ ﺣﻔﺮ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯﻩ ﻧﻴﺎﺯ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺁﺏ ﺑﺮﺩﺍﺷﺘﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺑﻪ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻥ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺯﻳﺎﺩ‪ ،‬ﻫﻤﺎﻥ ﺭﻭﺯ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺳﻌﺪ‪ 500 ،‬ﺳﻮﺍﺭ ﺩﻳﮕﺮ ﺑﻪ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﻣﺤﺎﻓﻈﻴﻦ ﻓﺮﺍﺕ ﺍﻓﺰﻭﺩ ﻭ ﺑﺰﺭﮔﺘﺮﻳﻦ ﺳﺮﺩﺍﺭ ﺧﻮﺩ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺣﺠﺎﺝ‬
‫ﺭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻧﺪﻫﻲ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﻣﺤﺎﻓﻈﺎﻥ ﺷﺮﻳﻌﻪ‪ ،‬ﻣﻨﺼﻮﺏ ﻛﺮﺩ‪.‬‬

‫ﺍﻭﻟﻴﻦ ﺟﻨﮓ ﺳﻘﺎ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺁﻭﺭﺩﻥ ﺁﺏ‬


‫ﺩﺭ ‪ 8‬ﻣﺤﺮﻡ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﺮﺍﺩﺭ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ( ﺭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﻫﻤﺮﺍﻩ ‪ 30‬ﺳﻮﺍﺭ ﻭ ‪ 20‬ﭘﻴﺎﺩﻩ ﺑﺎ ‪ 20‬ﻣﺸﻚ ﺷﺒﺎﻧﻪ‪ ،‬ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺁﻭﺭﺩﻥ ﺁﺏ‬
‫ﻓﺮﺳﺘﺎﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺁﻧﺎﻥ ﺑﺎ ﻣﺤﺎﻓﻈﺎﻥ ﺷﺮﻳﻌﻪ ﺩﺭﮔﻴﺮ ﻭ ﺑﺪﻭﻥ ﻫﻴﭻ ﺗﻠﻔﺎﺗﻲ ﻣﻮﻓﻖ ﺑﻪ ﺑﺮﺩﺍﺷﺘﻦ ﺁﺏ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ‬

‫ﻣﻼﻗﺎﺕ ﺑﺎ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺳﻌﺪ‬


‫ﻫﻤﺎﻥ ﺷﺐ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﺎ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺳﻌﺪ ﻣﻼﻗﺎﺕ ﻭ ﺩﺭ ﺣﻀﻮﺭ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ( ﻭ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﻛﺒﺮ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ ﺍﻭ ﭘﻴﺸﻨﻬﺎﺩ ﻧﻤﻮﺩﻧﺪ ﻛﻪ ﺑﺎ‬
‫ﺣﻀﺮﺗﺶ ﺑﻴﻌﺖ ﻛﻨﺪ‪ ،‬ﻭﻟﻲ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻬﺎﻧﻪ ﺁﻭﺭﺩ ﻭ ﻧﭙﺬﻳﺮﻓﺖ‪.‬‬
‫ﺷﻜﻞ ﺷﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -4‬ﺩﺭﮔﻴﺮﻱ ﺷﺐ ﻫﻔﺘﻢ ﻣﺤﺮﻡ ﺩﺭ‬
‫ﺷﺮﻳﻌﻪ‪ ،‬ﺩﺭ ﺣﺎﻟﻴﻜﻪ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ( ﻭ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ‬
‫ﺩﻳﮕﺮ ﺑﺎ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﻣﺤﺎﻓﻈﺎﻥ ﺷﺮﻳﻌﻪ ﺩﺭﮔﻴﺮ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪20 ،‬‬
‫ﻧﻔﺮ ﭘﻴﺎﺩﻩ ﻣﻮﻓﻖ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ ﻣﺸﻜﻬﺎﻱ ﺁﺏ ﺭﺍ ﭘﺮ ﻛﺮﺩﻩ ﻭ‬
‫ﻫﻤﮕﻲ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻼﻣﺖ ﺑﻪ ﺍﺭﺩﻭﮔﺎﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﺎﺯﮔﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬

‫‪10‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪11‬‬
‫ﺗﺎﺳﻮﻋﺎ‬
‫ﺭﻭﺯ ﭘﻨﺠﺸﻨﺒﻪ ‪ 9‬ﻣﺤﺮﻡ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺯﻳﺎﺩ ﻃﻲ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻧﻲ ﺑﻪ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺩﺳﺘﻮﺭ ﺩﺍﺩ‪:‬‬
‫ﻳﺎ ﺑﻪ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ ﭘﺴﺮ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﻛﻦ‪ ،‬ﻳﺎ ﺍﺯ ﺍﻭ ﺑﻴﻌﺖ ﺑﮕﻴﺮ ﻭ ﻳﺎ ﺍﺯ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻧﺪﻫﻲ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻨﺎﺭ ﺭﻭ ﺗﺎ ﺷﻤﺮ ﺑﺠﺎﻱ ﺗﻮ ﺑﻨﺸﻴﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺩﺭ ﻧﺘﻴﺠﻪ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺁﻣﺎﺩﻩ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺷﺪ ﻭ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺍﺯ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ( ﺧﻮﺍﺳﺘﻨﺪ ﻛﻪ ﺑﺎ ﻣﺬﺍﻛﺮﻩ‪ ،‬ﺟﻨﮓ ﺭﺍ ﻳﻚ ﺭﻭﺯ ﺑﻪ ﺗﻌﻮﻳﻖ‬
‫ﺑﻴﺎﻧﺪﺍﺯﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﻫﻤﺎﻥ ﺷﺐ ﺣﻀﺮﺍﺕ ﺯﻳﻨﺐ)ﺱ(‪ ،‬ﺍﻡ ﻛﻠﺜﻮﻡ)ﺱ(‪ ،‬ﺭﺑﺎﺏ)ﺱ( ﻭ ﻓﺎﻃﻤﻪ)ﺱ(‪ ،‬ﺑﺎ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻣﻼﻗﺎﺕ ﻛﺮﺩﻩ ﻭ ﻣﺘﻮﺟﻪ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ ﻛﻪ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻭ‬
‫ﻳﺎﺭﺍﻥ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﻓﺮﺩﺍ ﺷﻬﻴﺪ ﺧﻮﺍﻫﻨﺪ ﺷﺪ‪.‬‬

‫ﺍﻭﻟﻴﻦ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻥ ﺟﻨﮕﻲ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ(‬


‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﭘﺲ ﺍﺯ ﺁﻧﻜﻪ ﺑﺎ ﻳﺎﺭﺍﻥ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺁﺧﺮﻳﻦ ﺳﺨﻨﺎﻥ ﺭﺍ ﮔﻔﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﺍﺯ ﻭﻓﺎﺩﺍﺭﻱ ﺁﻧﺎﻥ ﻣﻄﻤﺌﻦ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺩﺳﺘﻮﺭ ﺩﺍﺩﻧﺪ ﻛﻪ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﻫﺎ ﺭﺍ ﺑﺮ‬
‫ﭼﻴﺪﻩ ﻭ ﺩﺭ ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻜﻲ ﻳﻜﺪﻳﮕﺮ ﺑﻨﺎ ﻛﻨﻨﺪ‪ .‬ﺑﻪ ﮔﻮﻧﻪ ﺍﻱ ﻛﻪ ﻃﻨﺎﺑﻬﺎ ﺩﺭ ﻫﻢ ﺩﺭﮔﻴﺮ ﺷﺪﻩ ﻭ ﻫﻴﭻ ﻣﺤﻞ ﻋﺒﻮﺭ ﺩﺭ ﻣﻴﺎﻥ ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﻧﺒﺎﺷﺪ‪ .‬ﺩﺭ ﻧﺘﻴﺠﻪ‬
‫ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﻫﺎ ﺭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﮔﺮﺩ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺟﻤﻊ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺳﭙﺲ ﺩﻭﺭ ﺗﺎ ﺩﻭﺭ ﭘﺸﺖ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﻫﺎ ﺭﺍ ﺧﻨﺪﻕ ﻛﻨﺪﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺁﻥ ﺭﺍ ﭘﺮ ﺍﺯ ﻫﻴﻤﻪ ﻭ ﻫﻴﺰﻡ ﻧﻤﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺳﻤﺖ ﭼﭗ ﺷﺮﻳﻌﻪ ﻓﺮﺍﺕ ﻭ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺭﺍﺳﺘﺸﺎﻥ ﺻﺤﺮﺍﻱ ﻛﺮﺑﻼ ﺑﻮﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﭼﺎﺩﺭ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺩﺭ ﻣﻴﺎﻥ ﭼﺎﺩﺭ ﻫﺎﻱ ﺩﻳﮕﺮ ﺑﻮﺩ‪ ،‬ﻭ ﻓﻘﻂ ﺍﺯ ﺭﻭﺑﺮﻭﻱ ﺁﻥ ﻣﻲ ﺷﺪ ﺑﻪ ﻣﺤﻞ ﺍﺭﺩﻭﮔﺎﻩ ﻭﺍﺭﺩ ﺷﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺷﻜﻞ ﺷﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -5‬ﻧﻤﺎﻱ ﻛﻠﻲ ﺻﺤﻨﻪ ﻧﺒﺮﺩ ﺩﺭ‬ ‫ﻣﺤﻞ ﺍﺳﺘﻘﺮﺍﺭ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺩﺭ ﻣﻘﺎﺑﻞ ﭼﺎﺩﺭﻫﺎ ﺑﻪ ﮔﻮﻧﻪ ﺍﻱ ﺑﻮﺩ ﻛﻪ ﺍﺯ ﺗﻨﻬﺎ ﺭﺍﻩ ﻭﺭﻭﺩﻱ ﺍﺭﺩﻭﮔﺎﻩ ﻣﺤﺎﻓﻈﺖ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺻﺒﺢ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﺯ ﺁﻏﺎﺯ ﺟﻨﮓ‪ ،‬ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ‬
‫ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ( ﺩﺭ ﻣﻴﺎﻥ ﺳﭙﺎﻫﻴﺎﻥ ﻛﻮﻓﻲ ﻣﺤﺎﺻﺮﻩ ﺷﺪﻩ‬
‫ﺍﺳﺖ‪ .‬ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺷﺎﻣﻞ ﺑﻴﺶ ﺍﺯ ‪ 20000‬ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯ‬
‫ﭘﻴﺎﺩﻩ‪ ،‬ﺳﻮﺍﺭﻩ ﻧﻈﺎﻡ‪ ،‬ﺗﻴﺮﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯ ﻭ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﻩ ﻧﻈﺎﻡ ﺯﺭﻫﻲ‬
‫ﺑﻮﺩ‪.‬‬

‫‪12‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪13‬‬
‫ﺻﺒﺢ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ‬
‫ﺻﺒﺢ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ ﭘﺲ ﺍﺯ ﺍﻗﺎﻣﻪ ﻧﻤﺎﺯ ﺻﺒﺢ‪ ،‬ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺩﺳﺘﻮﺭ ﺩﺍﺩﻧﺪ ﻛﻪ ﻫﻴﺰﻣﻬﺎ ﺭﺍ ﺩﺭ ﺧﻨﺪﻕ ﺁﺗﺶ ﺯﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺩﺭ ﻣﻘﺎﺑﻞ ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﺁﺭﺍﻳﺶ ﮔﺮﻓﺖ‪ ،‬ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻧﺪﻫﻲ ﭘﻴﺎﺩﻩ ﻧﻈﺎﻡ ﺑﻪ ﺷﺒﺚ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺭﺑﻌﻲ ﻭ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻧﺪﻫﻲ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﺑﻪ ﻋﺰﺭﻩ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻗﻴﺲ ﻭﺍﮔﺬﺍﺭ ﺷﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺳﻤﺖ ﭼﭗ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ )ﺳﻤﺖ ﺻﺤﺮﺍ( ﺭﺍ ﺷﻤﺮ‪ ،‬ﻭ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺭﺍﺳﺖ ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﺭﺍ ﻛﻪ ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻚ ﺷﺮﻳﻌﻪ ﺑﻮﺩ‪ ،‬ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺣﺠﺎﺝ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻧﺪﻫﻲ ﻣﻲ‬
‫ﻛﺮﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﺳﻮﺍﺭﻩ ﻧﻈﺎﻡ ﺯﺭﻫﻲ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺭﺍ ﺣﺼﻴﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻧﻤﻴﺮ ﺗﻤﻴﻤﻲ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻧﺪﻫﻲ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ( ﺩﺭ ﻣﻘﺎﺑﻞ ﭼﺎﺩﺭ ﻫﺎ ﺁﺭﺍﻳﺶ ﮔﺮﻓﺖ‪ .‬ﺟﻨﺎﺡ ﺭﺍﺳﺖ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺻﺤﺮﺍ ﺭﺍ ﺯﻫﻴﺮ ﻭ ﺟﻨﺎﺡ ﭼﭗ ﺳﻤﺖ ﻓﺮﺍﺕ ﺭﺍ ﺣﺒﻴﺐ‬
‫ﺍﺑﻦ ﻣﻈﺎﻫﺮ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻧﺪﻫﻲ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ‪ 40‬ﻧﻔﺮ ﭘﻴﺎﺩﻩ ﺭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﮔﻮﻧﻪ ﺍﻱ ﺁﺭﺍﻳﺶ ﺩﺍﺩﻧﺪ ﻛﻪ ﻧﻴﺰﻩ ﺩﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﺩﺭ ﺟﻠﻮ ﻭ ﺗﻴﺮﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯﺍﻥ ﭘﺸﺖ ﺳﺮ ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﺻﻒ ﺑﺴﺘﻪ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫‪ 32‬ﺳﻮﺍﺭ ﻧﻴﺰ ﺑﻪ ﺗﺸﺨﻴﺺ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﭘﻴﺎﺩﻩ ﻳﺎ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﻩ ﻣﻲ ﺟﻨﮕﻴﺪﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺣﺮ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﺯ ﺁﻏﺎﺯ ﺟﻨﮓ‪ ،‬ﺍﺯ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺟﺪﺍ ﺷﺪﻩ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ‬
‫ﮔﺎﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ( ﺗﺎﺧﺖ‪ .‬ﺣﺮ ﺍﺯ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻃﻠﺐ ﺑﺨﺸﺶ ﻛﺮﺩ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺻﻒ ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻥ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﭘﻴﻮﺳﺖ‪ .‬ﺍﺑﻮﺍﻟﺸﻌﺜﺎﻱ ﻛﻨﺪﻱ ﻧﻴﺰ ﺍﺯ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ‬
‫ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺟﺪﺍ ﺷﺪ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﭘﻴﻮﺳﺖ‪.‬‬

‫ﺷﻜﻞ ﺷﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -6‬ﻧﻤﺎﻱ ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻚ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﻭ‬


‫ﺁﺭﺍﻳﺶ ﻧﻈﺎﻣﻲ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ(‪ ،‬ﺻﺒﺢ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ ﻭ ﻗﺒﻞ‬
‫ﺍﺯﺁﻏﺎﺯ ﺟﻨﮓ‪ ،‬ﺧﻨﺪﻕ ﺁﺗﺶ ﮔﺮﺩﺍﮔﺮﺩ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﺭﺍ‬
‫ﺍﺯ ﭘﺸﺖ ﻭ ﺍﺯ ﺟﻨﺎﺣﻴﻦ‪ ،‬ﻣﺤﺎﻓﻈﺖ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩ‪ .‬ﺟﻨﺎﺡ‬
‫ﭼﭗ ﺯﻳﺮ ﻧﻈﺮ ﺣﺒﻴﺐ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻣﻈﺎﻫﺮ ﻭ ﺟﻨﺎﺡ ﺭﺍﺳﺖ‬
‫ﺯﻳﺮ ﻧﻈﺮ ﺯﻫﻴﺮ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ(‪،‬‬
‫ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ( ﻭ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﻛﺒﺮ)ﻉ( ﺩﺭ‬
‫ﺑﻴﻦ ﺩﻭ ﺟﻨﺎﺡ ﻗﺮﺍﺭ ﮔﺮﻓﺘﻪ ﺍﻧﺪ ﻭ ﻫﺮ ﺩﻭ ﻃﺮﻑ ﺭﺍ‬
‫ﭘﻮﺷﺶ ﻣﻲ ﺩﻫﻨﺪ‪.‬‬

‫‪14‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪15‬‬
‫ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺷﻤﺮ‬
‫ﺍﺑﺘﺪﺍ ﺷﻤﺮ ﻭ ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻧﺶ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﻣﺤﺎﺻﺮﻩ ﻭ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﻧﺎﮔﻬﺎﻧﻲ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﭘﺸﺖ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﻫﺎ ﺗﺎﺧﺘﻨﺪ‪ .‬ﺍﻣﺎ ﺑﺨﺎﻃﺮ ﺁﺗﺶ ﺧﻨﺪﻕ ﻭ ﻓﺸﺮﺩﮔﻲ‬
‫ﭼﺎﺩﺭﻫﺎ‪ ،‬ﻫﻴﭻ ﺭﺍﻫﻲ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﻧﻔﻮﺫ ﭘﻴﺪﺍ ﻧﻜﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﺑﺮ ﮔﺸﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﺩﺭ ﺟﺎﻱ ﺧﻮﺩ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﮔﺮﻓﺘﻨﺪ‪.‬‬

‫ﺳﺨﻨﺮﺍﻧﻲ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ(‬
‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﭘﻴﺶ ﺁﻣﺪﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺧﺪﺍﻭﻧﺪ ﺭﺍ ﺳﺘﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺑﺮ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ)ﺹ(‪ ،‬ﻓﺮﺳﺘﺎﺩﮔﺎﻥ ﺧﺪﺍ)ﺹ( ﻭ ﻓﺮﺷﺘﮕﺎﻥ ﺩﺭﻭﺩ ﻓﺮﺳﺘﺎﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﺑﻴﺎﻧﺎﺕ‬
‫ﺭﻭﺷﻨﮕﺮﻱ ﺍﻳﺮﺍﺩ ﻧﻤﻮﺩﻩ ﻭ ﺍﺯ ﺟﻤﻠﻪ ﺩﺭ ﺑﺨﺸﻲ ﺍﺯ ﺳﺨﻨﺎﻥ ﺧﻮﺩ ﻓﺮﻣﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪:‬‬
‫‪...‬ﺁﻳﺎ ﺍﻧﺪﻙ ﺗﺮﺩﻳﺪﻱ ﺩﺍﺭﻳﺪ ﻛﻪ ﻣﻦ ﭘﺴﺮ ﺩﺧﺘﺮ ﭘﻴﺎﻣﺒﺮﺗﺎﻥ ﻫﺴﺘﻢ؟‪...‬‬
‫‪ ...‬ﺑﺮ ﻛﺴﻲ ﺗﺠﺎﻭﺯ ﻧﻜﺮﺩﻩ ﺍﻡ‪ ،‬ﭘﺲ ﺍﮔﺮ ﻣﺮﺍ ﺩﻭﺳﺖ ﻧﻤﻲ ﺩﺍﺭﻳﺪ‪ ،‬ﺑﮕﺬﺍﺭﻳﺪ ﺑﺮﻭﻡ‪...‬‬
‫‪...‬ﺍﻱ ﻣﺮﺩﻡ ﺍﮔﺮ ﻣﺮﺍ ﻧﻤﻲ ﺧﻮﺍﻫﻴﺪ‪ ،‬ﺑﮕﺬﺍﺭﻳﺪ ﺍﺯ ﻧﺰﺩ ﺷﻤﺎ ﺑﻪ ﺳﺮﺯﻣﻴﻦ ﺧﻮﻳﺶ ﺑﺎﺯﮔﺮﺩﻡ‪.‬‬

‫ﺷﻜﻞ ﺷﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -7‬ﺗﻬﺎﺟﻢ ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻥ ﺷﻤﺮ ﺑﻪ ﭘﺸﺖ‬


‫ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ(‪ ،‬ﺷﻤﺮ ﺗﺼﻮﺭ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩ ﻛﻪ ﺑﺎ ﻳﻚ‬
‫ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺍﺯ ﭘﺸﺖ‪ ،‬ﺑﻪ ﺩﺭﻭﻥ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﻧﻔﻮﺫ ﻛﺮﺩﻩ ﻭ‬
‫ﺩﺭ ﻫﻤﺎﻥ ﺍﺑﺘﺪﺍﻱ ﺭﻭﺯ‪ ،‬ﻛﺎﺭ ﺭﺍ ﺗﻤﺎﻡ ﻣﻲ ﻛﻨﺪ‪ .‬ﺍﻣﺎ‬
‫ﺁﺗﺶ ﺧﻨﺪﻕ ﺑﺎﻋﺚ ﺭﻡ ﻛﺮﺩﻥ ﺍﺳﺒﻬﺎ ﻣﻲ ﺷﺪ ﻭ ﭼﻮﻥ‬
‫ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﻫﺎ ﺑﻪ ﻫﻢ ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻚ ﻭ ﺩﺭ ﺟﻮﺍﺭ ﺧﻨﺪﻕ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪،‬‬
‫ﺍﮔﺮ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﻱ ﺑﻪ ﺁﻥ ﻃﺮﻑ ﺧﻨﺪﻕ ﻣﻲ ﭘﺮﻳﺪ‪ ،‬ﻗﻄﻌﺎ‬
‫ﺑﻪ ﺩﺭﻭﻥ ﺧﻨﺪﻕ ﺁﺗﺶ ﻣﻲ ﺍﻓﺘﺎﺩ‪ .‬ﺩﺭ ﻃﻮﻝ ﺟﻨﮓ‬
‫ﻧﻴﺰ ﭼﻨﺪ ﺗﻴﺮﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯ ﺩﺭ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﻫﺎ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﮔﺮﻓﺘﻪ‬
‫ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﻣﻬﺎﺟﻤﻴﻨﻲ ﻛﻪ ﻗﺼﺪ ﻧﻔﻮﺫ ﺍﺯ ﭘﺸﺖ ﺭﺍ‬
‫ﺩﺍﺷﺘﻨﺪ‪ ،‬ﺗﻴﺮﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯﻱ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬

‫‪16‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪17‬‬
‫ﺁﻏﺎﺯ ﺟﻨﮓ‬
‫ﻋﻤﺮ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺗﻴﺮﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯﻱ ﻛﺮﺩ ﻭ ﺳﭙﺲ ﺑﺎﺭﺍﻥ ﺗﻴﺮ ﺁﻏﺎﺯ ﺷﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺩﻭ ﻃﺮﻑ ﺍﻧﺪﻛﻲ ﺁﺭﺍﻡ ﮔﺮﻓﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﺳﭙﺲ ﻋﺒﺪﺍﷲ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﻴﺮ ﻛﻠﺒﻲ ﺩﺭ ﻧﺒﺮﺩ ﺗﻦ ﺑﻪ ﺗﻦ‪ ،‬ﺩﻭ ﻧﻔﺮ ﺍﺯ ﺳﭙﺎﻫﻴﺎﻥ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺭﺍ ﻫﻼﻙ ﻛﺮﺩﻩ‪ ،‬ﺩﺳﺘﺶ‬
‫ﻣﺠﺮﻭﺡ ﺷﺪ ﻭ ﺑﺎﺯﮔﺸﺖ‪.‬‬
‫ﺑﻼﻓﺎﺻﻠﻪ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺣﺠﺎﺝ ﺑﺎ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻧﺶ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﭼﭗ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﻳﻮﺭﺵ ﺑﺮﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﻧﻴﺰﻩ ﺩﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﻭ ﺗﻴﺮﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯﺍﻥ ﺗﺤﺖ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻧﺪﻫﻲ ﺣﺒﻴﺐ ﺑﻦ ﻣﻈﺎﻫﺮ‪ ،‬ﺑﺎ ﺻﻼﺑﺖ ﺩﻓﺎﻉ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺗﻠﻔﺎﺕ ﺳﻨﮕﻴﻨﻲ ﺑﺮ ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﻭﺍﺭﺩ ﺁﻭﺭﺩﻩ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﻋﻘﺐ‬
‫ﺭﺍﻧﺪﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺣﺠﺎﺝ ﻋﻘﺐ ﻧﺸﺴﺖ‪.‬‬

‫ﻣﻤﻨﻮﻋﻴﺖ ﺟﻨﮓ ﺗﻦ ﺑﻪ ﺗﻦ‬


‫ﺩﻭﺑﺎﺭﻩ ﺟﻨﮕﻬﺎﻱ ﺗﻦ ﺑﻪ ﺗﻦ ﺁﻏﺎﺯ ﺷﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺑﺮﻳﺮ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻴﺪﺍﻥ ﺭﻓﺖ ﻭ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﺯ ﻛﺸﺘﻦ ﺩﻭ ﻧﻔﺮ‪ ،‬ﺑﻪ ﺷﻬﺎﺩﺕ ﺭﺳﻴﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺳﭙﺲ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﻗﺮﻇﻪ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻴﺪﺍﻥ ﺭﻓﺖ ﻭ ﺷﻬﻴﺪ ﺷﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺳﭙﺲ ﺩﻭ ﺟﻨﮕﺠﻮﻱ ﭘﻬﻠﻮﺍﻥ‪ ،‬ﺣﺮ ﺑﻦ ﻳﺰﻳﺪ ﺭﻳﺎﺣﻲ ﻭ ﻧﺎﻓﻊ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻫﻼﻝ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻴﺪﺍﻥ ﺭﻓﺘﻪ ﻭ ﻫﺮ ﻳﻚ ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩﻱ ﺭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﻫﻼﻛﺖ ﺭﺳﺎﻧﺪﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺩﺭ ﻧﺘﻴﺠﻪ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﺳﻌﺪ ﻃﻲ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻧﻲ ﻧﺒﺮﺩ ﺗﻦ ﺑﻪ ﺗﻦ ﺭﺍ ﺑﻜﻠﻲ ﻣﻤﻨﻮﻉ ﻛﺮﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﺷﻜﻞ ﺷﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -8‬ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺍﻭﻝ ﺍﺯ ﺟﻨﺎﺡ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺍﺑﻦ‬
‫ﺣﺠﺎﺝ‪ ،‬ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﺑﻪ ﺗﺎﺧﺖ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ‬
‫ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﻭﺭ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺑﺎ ﺗﻮﺟﻪ ﺑﻪ ﺧﻨﺪﻕ ﺁﺗﺶ‪ ،‬ﻓﻘﻂ‬
‫ﻳﻚ ﺭﺍﻩ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﻭﺭﻭﺩ ﺑﻪ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﻭﺟﻮﺩ ﺩﺍﺷﺖ ﻛﻪ‬
‫ﺩﺭ ﺳﻤﺖ ﭼﭗ ﺁﻥ ﺣﺒﻴﺐ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻣﻈﺎﻫﺮ ﻭ ﺩﺭ ﺳﻤﺖ‬
‫ﺭﺍﺳﺖ ﺁﻥ ﺯﻫﻴﺮ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻧﺪﻫﻲ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻥ‬
‫ﺣﺒﻴﺐ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻣﻈﺎﻫﺮ ﺑﺎ ﻧﻴﺰﻩ ﻫﺎ ﺩﺭ ﺑﺮﺍﺑﺮ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ‬
‫ﺍﺑﻦ ﺣﺠﺎﺝ ﺯﺍﻧﻮ ﺯﺩﻩ ﻭ ﺍﺳﺒﻬﺎ ﺭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﻋﻘﺐ ﺭﺍﻧﺪﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻥ ﺻﻒ ﭘﺸﺖ ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﻧﻴﺰ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ‬
‫ﻣﻬﺎﺟﻢ ﺗﻴﺮﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯﻱ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬

‫‪18‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪19‬‬
‫ﺣﻤﻼﺕ ﻣﺠﺪﺩ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﻩ ﻧﻈﺎﻡ‬
‫ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺣﺠﺎﺝ ﺑﺎ ﺳﭙﺎﻫﺶ ﻛﻪ ﺁﺭﺍﻳﺶ ﻣﺠﺪﺩ ﻳﺎﻓﺘﻪ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺩﻭﺑﺎﺭﻩ ﺑﻪ ﺟﻨﺎﺡ ﭼﭗ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﻛﺮﺩ‪ .‬ﺩﺭﮔﻴﺮﻱ ﺷﺪﻳﺪ ﺷﺪ ﻭ ﭘﻴﺎﺩﻩ ﻫﺎﻱ ﺟﻨﺎﺡ‬
‫ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺣﺠﺎﺝ ﻧﻴﺰ ﺑﻪ ﺩﺭﮔﻴﺮﻱ ﺍﺿﺎﻓﻪ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩﻱ ﺍﺯ ﻳﺎﺭﺍﻥ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺍﺯ ﺟﻤﻠﻪ ﻣﺴﻠﻢ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻮﺳﺠﻪ ﺷﻬﻴﺪ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ ﺍﻣﺎ ﺗﻠﻔﺎﺕ ﺩﺷﻤﻦ‬
‫ﺑﺎﻻ ﮔﺮﻓﺖ ﻭ ﻋﻘﺐ ﻧﺸﻴﻨﻲ ﻛﺮﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﺑﻼﻓﺎﺻﻠﻪ ﺷﻤﺮ ﺑﻪ ﺟﻨﺎﺡ ﺭﺍﺳﺖ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﻭﺭ ﺷﺪ‪ .‬ﺯﻫﻴﺮ ﻭ ﻳﺎﺭﺍﻧﺶ ﺑﺎ ﻧﻴﺰﻩ ﺟﻠﻮ ﭘﻴﺸﺮﻭﻱ ﺍﺳﺐ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﺭﺍ ﮔﺮﻓﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﺑﺎ ﺗﻴﺮﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯﻱ‬
‫ﺍﺯ ﻗﺪﺭﺕ ﻳﻮﺭﺵ ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﻛﺎﺳﺘﻨﺪ‪ ،‬ﻣﺮﺩﺍﻧﻪ ﺟﻨﮕﻴﺪﻩ ﻭ ﺗﻠﻔﺎﺗﻲ ﺑﻪ ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﻭﺍﺭﺩ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺩﺭ ﻫﻤﻴﻦ ﺯﻣﺎﻥ‪ ،‬ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﻭ ﭘﻴﺎﺩﻩ ﻫﺎﻱ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺍﺯ ﻫﺮ ﻃﺮﻑ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﺑﻪ ﺣﺮﻛﺖ ﺩﺭﺁﻣﺪﻧﺪ‪.‬‬

‫ﺷــﻜﻞ ﺷﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -9‬ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺍﻭﻝ ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻥ ﺷﻤﺮ‪ ،‬ﻭﻗﺘﻲ‬


‫ﻛﻪ ﺷﻤﺮ ﻭ ﺻﺴﻮﺍﺭﺍﻧﺶ ﺍﺯ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺭﺍﺳﺖ ﺑﻪ ﻭﺭﻭﺩﻱ‬
‫ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﻳﻮﺭﺵ ﻣﻲ ﺑﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﺯﻫﻴﺮ ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﺭﺍ ﺍﺯ‬
‫ﺩﻭﺭ ﺑﺎ ﺗﻴﺮ ﻣﻲ ﺯﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬

‫ﺷﻜﻞ ﺷﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -10‬ﺑﻪ ﻣﺤﺾ ﺭﺳﻴﺪﻥ ﻣﻬﺎﺟﻤﺎﻥ ﺑﻪ‬


‫ﻭﺭﻭﺩﻱ ﺧﻴﻤــﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ‪ ،‬ﻧﻴﺰﻩ ﺩﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﺑﺎ ﺳــﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﺩﺭﮔﻴﺮ‬
‫ﺷﺪﻩ ﻭ ﺭﺍﻩ ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﺭﺍ ﺳﺪ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺗﻴﺮﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯﺍﻥ ﻫﻤﭽﻨﺎﻥ‬
‫ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﻣﻬﺎﺟﻤﺎﻥ ﺗﻴﺮﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯﻱ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‬

‫‪20‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪21‬‬
‫ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ(‬
‫ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﺯ ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻚ ﺷﺪﻥ ﺍﻳﻦ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﺑﻪ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ‪ ،‬ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ )ﻉ( ﺑﺎ ‪ 31‬ﺳﻮﺍﺭ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺁﻧﺎﻥ ﻳﻮﺭﺵ ﺑﺮﺩﻩ‪ ،‬ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﺭﺍ ﻣﺘﻮﻗﻒ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺍﺯ ﻫﺮ ﺳﻮ ﺑﻪ ﻟﺸﻜﺮﻳﺎﻥ ﻛﻮﻓﻲ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﺭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﻋﻘﺐ ﻣﻲ ﺭﺍﻧﺪﻧﺪ‪ 500 .‬ﺗﻴﺮﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯ‪ ،‬ﺩﺭ ﭘﻨﺎﻩ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﺯﺭﻩ‬
‫ﭘﻮﺵ‪ ،‬ﺩﺭ ﻣﻜﺎﻧﻬﺎﻱ ﺩﻭﺭ ﺍﺯ ﺩﺳﺘﺮﺱ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﮔﺮﻓﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﺩﺭ ﻫﺮ ﺯﻣﺎﻥ ﻛﻪ ﻣﻲ ﺷﺪ‪ ،‬ﺑﺎ ﺗﻴﺮﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯﻱ‪ ،‬ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﺭﺍ ﺗﺤﺖ‬
‫ﻓﺸﺎﺭ ﻗﺮﺍﺭ ﻣﻲ ﺩﺍﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩ ﺯﻳﺎﺩﻱ ﺍﺯ ﺍﺳﺒﻬﺎ ﺭﺍ ﺍﺯ ﭘﺎﻱ ﺩﺭﺁﻭﺭﺩﻩ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻳﻦ ﺷﻜﻞ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﺭﺍ ﺩﻓﻊ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺍﺳﺐ ﺣﺮﺩﺭ ﺍﻳﻦ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﻛﺸﺘﻪ ﺷﺪ ﻭﺣﺮ ﺑﺎ ﺍﻳﻨﻜﻪ ﺑﻪ ﺗﻨﻬﺎﻳﻲ ﺩﺭﻣﻴﺎﻥ ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ ﺗﻨﻬﺎ ﻣﺎﻧﺪﻩ ﺑﻮﺩ‪ ،‬ﻭﻟﻲ ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩﻱ ﺭﺍ ﺍﺯﭘﺎﻱ ﺩﺭﺁﻭﺭﺩ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ‬
‫ﮔﺎﻩ ﺑﺎﺯﮔﺸﺖ‪.‬‬

‫ﺷــﻜﻞ ﺷــﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -11‬ﺩﺭﮔﻴﺮﻱ ﺩﺭ ﺳــﻤﺖ ﺭﺍﺳﺖ‬


‫ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﺑﺴــﻴﺎﺭ ﺷﺪﻳﺪ ﺷــﺪﻩ ﺑﻮﺩ ﻛﻪ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺳﻌﺪ‬
‫ﺩﺳﺘﻮﺭ ﺩﺍﺩ ﺳــﻮﺍﺭﻩ ﻧﻈﺎﻡ ﺍﺯ ﻫﻤﻪ ﻃﺮﻑ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﻫﻤﻪ‬
‫ﺟﺎﻧﺒﻪ ﺍﻱ ﺭﺍ ﺁﻏﺎﺯ ﻧﻤﺎﻳﻨﺪ‪ .‬ﻫﺪﻑ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺳــﻌﺪ ﺍﻳﺠﺎﺩ‬
‫ﺩﺭﮔﻴــﺮﻱ ﺩﺭ ﻫﺮ ﺩﻭ ﺟﻨﺎﺡ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﺑﻮﺩ‪ .‬ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ(‬
‫ﺳــﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻘﺎﺑﻠﻪ ﺑﺎ ﻣﻬﺎﺟﻤﺎﻥ ﺟﺪﻳﺪ‬
‫ﮔﺴــﻴﻞ ﺩﺍﺷﺘﻨﺪ‪ .‬ﺯﻫﻴﺮ ﻭ ﻳﺎﺭﺍﻧﺶ ﻣﻘﺎﺑﻞ ﺟﻨﺎﺡ ﺷﻤﺮ‬
‫ﺩﻓﺎﻉ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺩﺭ ﺣﺎﻟﻴﻜﻪ ﺳــﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺩﺭ ﺣﺎﻝ‬
‫ﺗﻬﺎﺟﻢ ﻫﻤﻪ ﺟﺎﻧﺒﻪ ﺑﻮﺩ‪ ،‬ﺳــﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﺳــﭙﺎﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ‬
‫ﺳــﻤﺖ ﺁﻧﺎﻥ ﻳﻮﺭﺵ ﺑﺮﺩﻩ ﻭ ﺩﺭ ﻣﻴﺎﻧﻪ ﻣﻴﺪﺍﻥ ﻧﺒﺮﺩ ﺑﺎ‬
‫ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﺩﺭﮔﻴﺮ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺩﺭ ﻣﻴﺎﻧﻪ ﻣﻴﺪﺍﻥ ﻧﺒﺮﺩ‪ ،‬ﺗﻠﻔﺎﺕ ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ ﺳــﻨﮕﻴﻦ ﺷﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﻋﻤﺮ ﺳﻌﺪ ﻳﻚ ﺗﺎﻛﺘﻴﻚ ﺟﺪﻳﺪ ﺑﺎ ﻫﻤﺎﻫﻨﮕﻲ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﻩ‬
‫ﻧﻈﺎﻡ ﺯﺭﻩ ﭘﻮﺵ ﻭ ﺗﻴﺮﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯﺍﻥ ﻃﺮﺍﺣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩ‪.‬‬

‫‪22‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪23‬‬
‫ﻧﻴﻤﻪ ﺭﻭﺯ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ‬
‫ﺳﻪ ﺗﺎ ﭼﻬﺎﺭ ﺳﺎﻋﺖ ﺍﺯ ﺻﺒﺢ ﮔﺬﺷﺘﻪ ﺑﻮﺩ‪ ،‬ﺁﺗﺶ ﺧﻨﺪﻕ ﺭﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺧﺎﻣﻮﺷﻲ ﻣﻲ ﺭﻓﺖ‪ .‬ﺗﺎﺑﺶ ﺧﻮﺭﺷﻴﺪ ﺑﺮ ﺻﺤﺮﺍ‪ ،‬ﺧﺎﻙ ﺯﻳﺮ ﭘﺎﻱ ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻥ‬
‫ﺭﺍ ﮔﺮﻡ ﻛﺮﺩﻩ ﺑﻮﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﻛﻼﻫﺨﻮﺩﻫﺎ ﻭ ﺯﺭﻩ ﻫﺎ‪ ،‬ﺩﺍﻍ ﻭ ﺩﺍﻍ ﺗﺮ ﻣﻲ ﺷــﺪ‪ .‬ﺁﺏ ﺑﺪﻥ ﺟﻨﮕﺠﻮﻳﺎﻥ ﺍﺯ ﭼﻬﺮﻩ ﻫﺎ ﻭ ﺑﺪﻧﻬﺎ‪ ،‬ﻗﻄﺮﻩ ﻗﻄﺮﻩ ﻓﺮﻭ ﻣﻲ ﺭﻳﺨﺖ‪ .‬ﺷﻤﺸــﻴﺮ ﺯﺩﻥ‪،‬‬
‫ﺩﻭﻧﺪﮔﻲ ﻭ ﻫﺮ ﻓﻌﺎﻟﻴﺖ ﺩﻳﮕﺮﻱ ﺑﺎﻋﺚ ﺗﺸﻨﮕﻲ ﻣﻲ ﺷﺪ ﻭ ﺯﺧﻤﻲ ﻫﺎ ﺑﻪ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﺧﻮﻧﺮﻳﺰﻱ‪ ،‬ﻋﻄﺶ ﺩﺍﺷﺘﻨﺪ‪ .‬ﺍﺳﺒﻬﺎ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺷﺮﻛﺖ ﺩﺭ ﺣﻤﻼﺕ‬
‫ﺑﻪ ﺁﺏ ﻧﻴﺎﺯ ﺩﺍﺷﺘﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺷﺮﻳﻌﻪ ﻓﺮﺍﺕ ﺁﺏ ﮔﻮﺍﺭﺍﺋﻲ ﺩﺍﺷﺖ ﻭ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺗﻤﺎﻣﻲ ﺁﺏ ﻣﻮﺭﺩ ﻧﻴﺎﺯ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺭﺍ ﺍﺯ ﺷﺮﻳﻌﻪ ﺑﺮ ﻣﻲ ﺩﺍﺷﺖ‪ .‬ﺍﻣﺎ ﺭﺍﻩ ﺷﺮﻳﻌﻪ ﺑﺮ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ(‬
‫ﺑﺴﺘﻪ ﺑﻮﺩ‪ .‬ﺫﺧﻴﺮﻩ ﺁﺏ ﺁﺷﺎﻣﻴﺪﻧﻲ ﻧﻴﺰ ﺑﻪ ﺳﺮﻋﺖ ﻣﺼﺮﻑ ﻣﻲ ﺷﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﻋﻤﺮ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺩﺳﺘﻮﺭ ﺩﺍﺩ ﻛﻪ ﺑﻪ ﻫﺮ ﺷﻜﻞ ﺭﺍﻫﻲ ﺍﺯ ﭘﺸﺖ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﺍﻳﺠﺎﺩ ﺷﻮﺩ ﺗﺎ ﺍﻣﻜﺎﻥ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺍﺯ ﺟﻨﺎﺣﻬﺎﻱ ﺩﻳﮕﺮ ﻣﻬﻴﺎ ﮔﺮﺩﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﺷﻤﺮ ﺩﻭﺑﺎﺭﻩ ﺑﻪ ﭘﺸﺖ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﻫﺎ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﻛﺮﺩ‪ .‬ﺍﻭ ﻭ ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻧﺶ ﺑﺎ ﭘﺮﺗﺎﺏ ﺗﻴﺮﻫﺎﻱ ﺁﺗﺸﻴﻦ ﻭ ﻧﻴﺰﻩ‪ ،‬ﺳﻌﻲ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﻫﺎﻱ ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻚ ﺑﻪ‬
‫ﺧﻨﺪﻕ ﺭﺍ ﺑﺴﻮﺯﺍﻧﻨﺪ ﻳﺎ ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﺭﺍ ﻓﺮﻭ ﺑﺮﻳﺰﻧﺪ ﺗﺎ ﺭﺍﻫﻲ ﺑﺎﺯ ﻛﻨﻨﺪ‪ .‬ﺑﺴﻴﺎﺭﻱ ﺍﺯ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﻫﺎ ﺁﺗﺶ ﮔﺮﻓﺘﻪ‪ ،‬ﺍﻧﺪﻙ ﺍﻧﺪﻙ ﻣﻲ ﺳﻮﺧﺘﻨﺪ‪ ،‬ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﻫﻤﻴﻦ‬
‫ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻫﻤﭽﻨﺎﻥ ﺍﻣﻜﺎﻥ ﻧﻔﻮﺫ ﺍﺯ ﭘﺸﺖ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﻭﺟﻮﺩ ﻧﺪﺍﺷﺖ‪.‬‬
‫ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﺷﻤﺮ‪ ،‬ﺑﺎ ﻧﻴﺰﻩ ﺑﻪ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﻫﺎﻱ ﺭﺩﻳﻔﻬﺎﻱ ﺑﻌﺪﻱ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﻭ ﺯﻫﻴﺮ ﺑﺎ ‪ 10‬ﻧﻔﺮ ﺟﻠﻮﻱ ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﺭﺍ ﮔﺮﻓﺖ‪ .‬ﺗﻠﻔﺎﺕ ﻭﺍﺭﺩ ﺷﺪﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ‬
‫ﺭﺍ ﻭﺍﺩﺍﺭ ﺑﻪ ﻋﻘﺐ ﻧﺸﻴﻨﻲ ﺍﺯ ﭘﺸﺖ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﻛﺮﺩ‪ ،‬ﻭﻟﻲ ﻋﺪﻩ ﺯﻳﺎﺩﻱ ﺍﺯ ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ ﻧﻴﺰ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﺯﻫﻴﺮ ﺗﺎﺧﺘﻨﺪ‪ .‬ﺯﻫﻴﺮ ﻭ ﻫﻤﺮﺍﻫﺎﻧﺶ‬
‫ﻣﺠﺒﻮﺭ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ ﺗﺎ ﻭﺭﻭﺩﻱ ﺍﺭﺩﻭ ﮔﺎﻩ ﻋﻘﺐ ﻧﺸﻴﻨﻲ ﻛﻨﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺣﻤﻼﺕ ﭘﻲ ﺩﺭ ﭘﻲ ﺍﺩﺍﻣﻪ ﺩﺍﺷﺖ ﻭ ﻛﺸﺘﻪ ﻫﺎﻱ ﺩﻭﻃﺮﻑ ﺯﻳﺎﺩ ﻣﻲ ﺷﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺷﻜﻞ ﺷــﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -12‬ﺩﺭﮔﻴﺮﻱ ﺳــﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﺎ‬
‫ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩ ﻛﺸﺘﻪ ﻫﺎﻱ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﻴﺸﺘﺮ ﻧﻤﺎﻳﺎﻥ ﺑﻮﺩ ﺍﻣﺎ ﻟﺸﻜﺮ ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﺁﻧﻘﺪﺭ ﭘﺮ ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩ ﺑﻮﺩ ﻛﻪ ﺍﺛﺮ ﺗﻠﻔﺎﺕ ﺩﺭ ﺁﻥ ﻇﺎﻫﺮ ﻧﻤﻲ ﺷﺪ‬
‫ﺳــﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺩﺭ ﺑﺨﺶ ﻣﻴﺎﻧﻲ ﻣﻴﺪﺍﻥ ﻧﺒﺮﺩ ﻟﺤﻈﻪ ﺍﻭﺝ‬
‫ﺟﻨﮓ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍﺳــﺖ‪ .‬ﻫﻢ ﺩﺭ ﺟﻨﺎﺡ ﺭﺍﺳــﺖ ﻭ ﻫﻢ‬
‫ﺩﺭ ﻣﻴﺎﻧﻪ ﻣﻴﺪﺍﻥ‪ ،‬ﺩﺭﮔﻴﺮﻱ ﺑﺴــﻴﺎﺭ ﺳﺨﺘﻲ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ‬
‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻭ ﺳــﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺩﺭ ﺟﺮﻳﺎﻥ ﺑــﻮﺩ‪ .‬ﺩﺭ ﻫﻴﻤﻦ‬
‫ﻧﺒﺮﺩ‪ ،‬ﺗﻠﻔﺎﺕ ﺑﺴــﻴﺎﺭ ﺳﻨﮕﻴﻨﻲ ﺑﻪ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﻣﻬﺎﺟﻤﺎﻥ ﺩﺭ‬
‫ﻣﻴﺎﻧﻪ ﻣﻴﺪﺍﻥ ﻭﺍﺭﺩ ﺷــﺪﻩ ﻭ ﺟﻨﮓ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ ﻟﺤﻈﺎﺕ‬
‫ﺑﺴﻴﺎﺭ ﺑﺤﺮﺍﻧﻲ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺭﺍ ﺳﭙﺮﻱ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩ‪.‬‬

‫‪24‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪25‬‬
‫ﻇﻬﺮ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍء‬
‫ﻇﻬﺮ ﺷــﺪ ﻭ ﺗﺎﺑﺶ ﺧﻮﺭﺷــﻴﺪ ﺑﻪ ﺑﻴﺸــﺘﺮﻳﻦ ﺣﺪ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺭﺳﻴﺪﻩ ﺑﻮﺩ‪ .‬ﮔﺮﻣﺎﻱ ﺻﺤﺮﺍ‪ ،‬ﺳﻨﮕﻴﻨﻲ ﺍﺳــﻠﺤﻪ ﻭ ﺯﺭﻩ‪ ،‬ﻓﻌﺎﻟﻴﺘﻬﺎﻱ ﺷﺪﻳﺪ ﺟﻨﮕﻲ ﻭ‬
‫ﺧﻮﻧﺮﻳﺰﻱ ﺯﺧﻤﻬﺎ‪ ،‬ﻟﺒﻬﺎﻱ ﺗﺸﻨﻪ ﺭﺍ ﺧﺸﻜﻴﺪﻩ ﻛﺮﺩﻩ ﺑﻮﺩ‪ .‬ﺁﺏ ﺷﺮﻳﻌﻪ ﻓﺮﺍﺕ ﭘﺸﺖ ﺷﻤﺸﻴﺮﻫﺎﻱ ‪ 4000‬ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯ ﻗﺮﺍﺭ ﺩﺍﺷﺖ‪.‬‬
‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺩﺭﺧﻮﺍﺳﺖ ﺗﻮﻗﻒ ﺟﻨﮓ ﻧﻤﻮﺩﻧﺪ ﺗﺎ ﻧﻤﺎﺯ ﺑﮕﺰﺍﺭﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﻓﺮﺻﺖ ﺭﺍ ﻏﻨﻴﻤﺖ ﺩﺍﻧﺴﺖ ﻭ ﺳﻌﻲ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩ ﻛﻪ ﻧﻔﻮﺫ ﻛﻨﺪ‪ ،‬ﺣﺒﻴﺐ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻣﻈﺎﻫﺮ ﻭ ﮔﺮﻭﻫﺶ ﺑﻪ ﭘﻴﺶ ﺭﻓﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﺑﺎ ﺑﺨﺸﻲ ﺍﺯ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ‬
‫ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺩﺭﮔﻴﺮ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺣﺮ ﻭ ﺯﻫﻴﺮ ﭘﺸﺖ ﺑﻪ ﭘﺸﺖ ﻫﻢ ﻣﻲ ﺟﻨﮕﻴﺪﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺁﻥ ﭼﻨﺎﻥ ﻛﻪ ﺍﺟﺎﺯﻩ ﻧﻔﻮﺫ ﺑﻪ ﻫﻴﭽﻜﺲ ﺩﺍﺩﻩ ﻧﺸﺪ‪ .‬ﺍﻣﺎ ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﻫﺠﻮﻡ ﻣﻲ ﺁﻭﺭﺩ ﻭ ﻋﻘﺐ‬
‫ﻣﻲ ﻧﺸﺴﺖ‪.‬‬
‫ﺩﺭ ﻫﻴﻤﻦ ﻫﻨﮕﺎﻣﻪ ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩ ﺯﻳﺎﺩﻱ ﺍﺯ ﭘﻴﺎﺩﻩ ﻫﺎ ﺑﻪ ﺣﺮ ﻳﻮﺭﺵ ﺑﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﻣﺤﺎﺻﺮﻩ ﺍﺵ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺍﻭ ﺷﻬﻴﺪ ﺷﺪ‪ .‬ﺑﻪ ﺍﻳﻦ ﺷﻜﻞ ﺩﺭ ﻫﻨﮕﺎﻡ ﻧﻤﺎﺯ‬
‫ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩﻱ ﺍﺯ ﺑﺰﺭﮔﺎﻥ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺷﻬﻴﺪ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ‪.‬‬

‫ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﺯ ﻧﻤﺎﺯ‬
‫ﭘﺲ ﺍﺯ ﻧﻤﺎﺯ ﺩﺭﮔﻴﺮﻱ ﺑﻪ ﺷﺪﺕ ﺍﺩﺍﻣﻪ ﻳﺎﻓﺖ ﻭ ﭼﻮﻥ ﻳﺎﺭﺍﻥ ﻛﻢ ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﮔﺎﻫﻲ ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻥ ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﺗﺎ ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻜﻲ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻣﻲ ﺭﺳﻴﺪﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﻳﻜﻲ ﺟﻠﻮﻱ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺯﺍﻧﻮ ﺯﺩﻩ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻬﺎﺟﻤﻴﻦ ﺗﻴﺮﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯﻱ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﻳﻜﻲ ﭘﻴﻜﺮ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺭﺍ ﺟﻠﻮ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺳﭙﺮ ﻛﺮﺩﻩ ﺑﻮﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﺷﻜﻞ ﺷﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -13‬ﻧﻤﺎﺯ ﻇﻬﺮ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ‪ ،‬ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻧﺪﻫﺎﻥ‬ ‫ﺑﻪ ﻫﺮ ﺷﻜﻞ ﻛﻪ ﻣﻲ ﺷﺪ ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﺭﺍ ﻋﻘﺐ ﺯﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﻭﻗﺘﻲ ﻣﺘﻮﺟﻪ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ ﻛﻪ ﻋﺪﻩ ﺍﻱ ﺍﺯ‬
‫ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻥ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻣﺸﻐﻮﻝ ﻧﻤﺎﺯ ﻫﺴﺘﻨﺪ‪ ،‬ﺑﺎ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻥ‬
‫ﭘﻴﺸﺮﻭﻱ ﺳﻌﻲ ﺩﺍﺷﺘﻨﺪ ﻧﻔﻮﺫ ﻛﻨﻨﺪ‪ ،‬ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ‬
‫ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺗﻴﺮﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯﺍﻥ ﺩﺭ ﭘﻨﺎﻩ ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻥ‬
‫ﺩﻳﮕﺮ ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻚ ﻣﻲ ﺁﻣﺪﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺗﻴﺮ‬
‫ﻣﻲ ﺍﻧﺪﺍﺧﺘﻨﺪ‪.‬‬

‫‪26‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪27‬‬
‫ﺳﻮﺧﺘﻦ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﻫﺎ‬
‫ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﻫﺎﻱ ﭘﺸﺖ ﺧﻨﺪﻕ ﺳﻮﺧﺘﻪ ﺑﻮﺩ ﻭ ﻫﻤﻪ ﻳﺎﺭﺍﻥ ﻣﺠﺒﻮﺭ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ ﺩﺭ ﺟﻠﻮﻱ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺑﮕﻴﺮﻧﺪ ﺗﺎ ﺗﻴﺮﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯﺍﻥ ﺍﺯ ﭘﺸﺖ ﺧﻨﺪﻕ‬
‫ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﺭﺍ ﻧﺸﺎﻧﻪ ﻧﮕﻴﺮﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺍﻣﺎ ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﺍﺯ ﻫﺮ ﻃﺮﻑ ﻣﻲ ﺗﺎﺧﺖ ﻭ ﺗﻴﺮﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯﺍﻥ ﺍﺯ ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻚ ﻳﺎﺭﺍﻥ ﺭﺍ ﻫﺪﻑ ﻗﺮﺍﺭ ﻣﻲ ﺩﺍﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺩﺭ ﺍﻳﻦ ﺣﺎﻝ ﻛﺸﺘﻪ‬
‫ﺷﺪﻥ ﻳﺎﺭﺍﻥ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﺴﻴﺎﺭ ﺳﺮﻋﺖ ﮔﺮﻓﺖ‪.‬‬

‫ﺣﻤﻼﺕ ﺷﻤﺮ‬
‫ﺩﺭ ﻫﻤﻴﻦ ﺍﺛﻨﺎ ﺷﻤﺮ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺷﺪﻳﺪﻱ ﺭﺍ ﺁﻏﺎﺯ ﻧﻤﻮﺩ ﻛﻪ ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩﻱ ﺍﺯ ﻳﺎﺭﺍﻥ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ ﺷﻬﺎﺩﺕ ﺭﺳﻴﺪﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﺻﻴﺪﺍﻭﻱ‪ ،‬ﺟﺎﺑﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺎﺭﺙ ﺳﻠﻤﺎﻧﻲ‪ ،‬ﺳﻌﺪ ﺑﻦ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺑﻦ ﺧﺎﻟﺪ ﻭ ﻣﺠﻤﻊ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪﺍﷲ ﻋﺎﺋﺬﻱ ﺑﺎ ﻫﻢ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ‬
‫ﺗﺎﺧﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﺳﺨﺖ ﻣﻲ ﺟﻨﮕﻴﺪﻧﺪ ﻛﻪ ﻣﺤﺎﺻﺮﻩ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺩﺭ ﻫﻤﻴﻦ ﺯﻣﺎﻥ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺁﻧﺎﻥ ﺷﺘﺎﻓﺖ ﻭ ﺍﺯ ﺣﻠﻘﻪ ﻣﺤﺎﺻﺮﻩ‬
‫ﻧﺠﺎﺗﺸﺎﻥ ﺩﺍﺩ‪ .‬ﺑﺎ ﺁﻧﻜﻪ ﺯﺧﻤﻲ ﺷﺪﻩ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺍﻳﺴﺘﺎﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﺑﺎﺯ ﻫﻢ ﺑﻪ ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺑﺮﺩ ﻭ ﻫﺮ ﭼﻬﺎﺭ ﻧﻔﺮ ﺷﻬﻴﺪ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺩﺭ ﻫﻤﻴﻦ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﻧﺎﻓﻊ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻫﻼﻝ ﺍﺳﻴﺮ ﺷﺪﻩ ﻭ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺩﺭ ﺍﺭﺩﻭﮔﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﻪ ﺩﺳﺖ ﺷﻤﺮ ﺑﻪ ﺷﻬﺎﺩﺕ ﺭﺳﻴﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﻋﺎﺑﺲ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺷﺒﻴﺐ ﺟﻨﮕﺎﻭﺭ ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻓﻲ ﺑﻮﺩ ﻛﻪ ﺳﭙﺎﻫﻴﺎﻥ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺍﺯ ﺩﺳﺖ ﺍﻭ ﻣﻲ ﮔﺮﻳﺨﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﺍﻭ ﺭﺍ ﺍﺯ ﺩﻭﺭ ﺑﺎ ﺳﻨﮓ ﻣﻲ ﺯﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺑﻪ ﻫﺮ ﻃﺮﻑ‬
‫ﻛﻪ ﻣﻲ ﺩﻭﻳﺪ‪ ،‬ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﺭﺍ ﻣﻲ ﺗﺎﺭﺍﻧﻴﺪ‪ .‬ﺍﻭ ﻧﻴﺰ ﺩﺭ ﻫﻤﻴﻦ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺑﻪ ﺷﻬﺎﺩﺕ ﺭﺳﻴﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺍﺑﻮ ﺍﻟﺸﻌﺜﺎﻱ ﻛﻨﺪﻱ ﺑﺎ ﻛﻤﺎﻥ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺩﺭ ﻣﻘﺎﺑﻞ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺯﺍﻧﻮ ﺯﺩﻩ ﺑﻮﺩ ﻭ ﻧﻤﻲ ﮔﺬﺍﺷﺖ ﻫﻴﭽﻜﺲ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻚ ﺷﻮﺩ‪ .‬ﺍﻭ ﺑﺴﻴﺎﺭﻱ ﺍﺯ‬
‫ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ ﺭﺍ ﺑﺎ ﺗﻴﺮ ﺯﺩ‪ .‬ﺍﺯ ﻳﻜﺼﺪ ﺗﻴﺮ ﻓﻘﻂ ‪ 5‬ﺗﻴﺮ ﺍﻭ ﺑﻪ ﻫﺪﻑ ﻧﺨﻮﺭﺩ‪ .‬ﺍﻭ ﻧﻴﺰ ﺩﺭ ﻫﻤﻴﻦ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺷﻬﻴﺪ ﺷﺪ‪.‬‬

‫ﺷﻜﻞ ﺷﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -14‬ﺩﺭﮔﻴﺮﻱ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﺎ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ‬


‫ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺩﺭ ﻭﻗﺖ ﻧﻤﺎﺯ ﻇﻬﺮ‪ ،‬ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻥ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ ﻧﻮﺑﺖ‬
‫ﻧﻤﺎﺯ ﻣﻲ ﮔﺰﺍﺭﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺳﺮﻋﺖ ﺑﻪ ﺻﺤﻨﻪ ﻧﺒﺮﺩ ﺑﺎﺯ‬
‫ﻣﻲ ﮔﺸﺘﻨﺪ‪ .‬ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﻧﻴﺰ ﺩﺭ ﻫﻤﻴﻦ ﺍﺛﻨﺎ‪ ،‬ﻓﺸﺎﺭ ﺣﻤﻼﺕ‬
‫ﺭﺍ ﻣﻲ ﺍﻓﺰﻭﺩ‪ .‬ﺍﻣﺎ ﻓﺪﺍﻛﺎﺭﻱ ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻥ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻣﺎﻧﻊ‬
‫ﺍﺯ ﻧﻔﻮﺫ ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻥ ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﺑﻮﺩ‪ .‬ﻭﻗﺘﻲ ﻛﻪ ﻣﺮﺍﺳﻢ ﻧﻤﺎﺯ‬
‫ﺗﻤﺎﻡ ﺷﺪ‪ ،‬ﻫﻤﻪ ﺟﻨﮕﺠﻮﻳﺎﻥ ﺣﺴﻴﻨﻲ ﺑﻪ ﺍﺗﻔﺎﻕ ﺑﻪ‬
‫ﺩﻓﺎﻉ ﭘﺮﺩﺍﺧﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﺭﺍ ﭘﺲ ﺯﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬

‫‪28‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪29‬‬
‫ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﺯ ﻇﻬﺮ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ‬
‫ﻭﻗﺘﻴﻜﻪ ﻫﻤﻪ ﻳﺎﺭﺍﻥ ﻛﺸﺘﻪ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﻓﻘﻂ ‪ 15‬ﺟﻨﮕﺠﻮﻱ ﻫﺎﺷﻤﻲ ﺩﺭ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﺎﻗﻲ ﻣﺎﻧﺪﻩ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ ﻛﻪ ﮔﻞ ﺳﺮ ﺳﺒﺪ ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ‬
‫ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﻛﺒﺮ)ﻉ( ﺑﻮﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﺩﺭ ﮔﺮﻣﺎﻱ ﻃﺎﻗﺖ ﻓﺮﺳﺎﻱ ﺁﻓﺘﺎﺏ ﻭ ﻧﺒﺮﺩ‪ ،‬ﺫﺧﻴﺮﻩ ﺁﺏ ﺁﺷﺎﻣﻴﺪﻧﻲ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺗﻤﺎﻡ ﺷﺪﻩ ﺑﻮﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﺿﺤﺎﻙ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﺒﺪﺍﷲ ﻣﺸﺮﻗﻲ ﺑﻪ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻋﺮﺽ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪:‬‬
‫ﺍﻱ ﭘﺴﺮ ﭘﻴﺎﻣﺒﺮ ﺧﺪﺍ)ﺹ( ﻣﻲ ﺩﺍﻧﻲ ﻗﺮﺍﺭ ﻣﻴﺎﻥ ﻣﻦ ﻭ ﺗﻮ ﭼﻪ ﺑﻮﺩ‪ ،‬ﻛﻪ ﮔﻔﺘﻢ ﺗﺎ ﻭﻗﺘﻲ ﻛﻪ ﺟﻨﮕﺎﻭﺭﻱ ﺑﺎﺷﺪ ﺑﻪ ﻛﻤﻚ ﺗﻮ ﺟﻨﮓ ﻣﻲ ﻛﻨﻢ ﻭ‬
‫ﭼﻮﻥ ﺟﻨﮕﺎﻭﺭﻱ ﻧﻤﺎﻧﺪ ﺍﺟﺎﺯﻩ ﺩﺍﺭﻡ ﺑﺮﻭﻡ؟!‬
‫ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻓﺮﻣﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪:‬‬
‫ﺭﺍﺳﺖ ﻣﻲ ﮔﻮﺋﻲ‪ ،‬ﭼﮕﻮﻧﻪ ﭼﮕﻮﻧﻪ ﻣﻲ ﺗﻮﺍﻧﻲ ﺑﺮﻭﻱ!؟ ﺍﮔﺮ ﻣﻲ ﺗﻮﺍﻧﻲ ﺍﺟﺎﺯﻩ ﺩﺍﺭﻱ‪.‬‬
‫ﺿﺤﺎﻙ ﺍﺳﺒﺶ ﺭﺍ ﺩﺭ ﻳﻜﻲ ﺍﺯ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﻫﺎ ﭘﻨﻬﺎﻥ ﻛﺮﺩﻩ ﺑﻮﺩ‪ ،‬ﺁﻧﺮﺍ ﺳﻮﺍﺭ ﺷﺪ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺗﺎﺧﺖ ﺍﺯ ﻣﻴﺪﺍﻥ ﻧﺒﺮﺩ ﮔﺮﻳﺨﺖ‪.‬‬

‫ﺷﻜﻞ ﺷﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -15‬ﻋﻘﺐ ﻧﺸﻴﻨﻲ ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻥ ﺷﻤﺮ ﺩﺭ‬


‫ﺗﻬﺎﺟﻢ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﺯ ﻇﻬﺮ ﻋﺎﺷــﻮﺭﺍ‪ ،‬ﺳــﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﺑﻨﻲ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ‬
‫ﭼﻨﺪﻳــﻦ ﺑــﺎﺭ ﺣﻤﻼﺕ ﺩﺷــﻤﻦ ﺭﺍ ﺩﻓﻊ ﻛــﺮﺩﻩ ﻭ ﺑﺎ‬
‫ﺗﺤﻤﻴﻞ ﺗﻠﻔﺎﺕ ﺳــﻨﮕﻴﻦ‪ ،‬ﺁﻧﻬــﺎ ﺭﺍ ﻣﺠﺒﻮﺭ ﺑﻪ ﻋﻘﺐ‬
‫ﻧﺸﻴﻨﻲ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬

‫‪30‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪31‬‬
‫ﺟﻮﺍﻧﺎﻥ ﺑﻨﻲ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ‬
‫ﺩﻭ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺑﻌﺪﻱ ﺭﺍ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﻛﺒﺮ)ﻉ(‪ ،‬ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻗﺎﺳﻢ)ﻉ( ﻭ ﺳﻪ ﻧﻔﺮ ﺩﻳﮕﺮ ﺑﺎ ﺧﻮﻥ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺑﻪ ﻋﻘﺐ ﺭﺍﻧﺪﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﻛﺒﺮ)ﻉ(‬
‫ﺍﻭﻟﻴﻦ ﺷﻬﻴﺪ ﺍﺯ ﺧﺎﻧﺪﺍﻥ ﺑﻨﻲ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﺑﻮﺩ‪.‬‬
‫‪ 15‬ﺟﻨﮕﺠﻮﻱ ﺷﺠﺎﻉ ﺑﻨﻲ ﻫﺎﺷﻤﻲ ﺑﺎ ﻳﻜﺪﻳﮕﺮ ﻭﺩﺍﻉ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺩﺭ ﻣﻘﺎﺑﻞ ﭼﺎﺩﺭ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺻﻒ ﺑﺴﺘﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺟﺪﻳﺪﻱ ﺭﺍ ﺁﻏﺎﺯ ﻧﻤﻮﺩ‪ ،‬ﺍﻣﺎ ﺷﺠﺎﻋﺎﻥ ﺑﻨﻲ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﺭﺍﻩ ﻧﻔﻮﺫ ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﺭﺍ ﺑﺴﺘﻪ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﻛﺒﺮ)ﻉ( ﻓﺮﻳﺎﺩ ﻣﻲ ﺯﺩﻧﺪ‪:‬‬
‫ﻣﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻫﺴﺘﻢ‪ ،‬ﺳﻮﮔﻨﺪ ﺑﻪ ﺧﺪﺍﻭﻧﺪ ﻋﺰ ﻭ ﺟﻞ ﻛﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺍﺯ ﻫﺮ ﻛﺲ ﺩﻳﮕﺮﻱ ﺑﻪ ﭘﻴﺎﻣﺒﺮ)ﺹ( ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻜﺘﺮﻳﻢ‪ ،‬ﻣﻦ ﺍﻣﺮﻭﺯ‬
‫ﻫﻤﭽﻮﻥ ﻳﻚ ﺟﻮﺍﻥ ﻫﺎﺷﻤﻲ ﻋﻠﻮﻱ‪ ،‬ﺍﺯ ﭘﺪﺭﻡ ﺩﺭ ﺑﺮﺍﺑﺮ ﺻﺪﻣﺎﺕ‪ ،‬ﺩﻓﺎﻉ ﻣﻲ ﻛﻨﻢ‪.‬‬
‫ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﻛﺒﺮ)ﻉ( ﺳﻮﺍﺭ ﺑﺮ ﺍﺳﺐ‪ ،‬ﺑﺎ ﺷﻤﺸﻴﺮ ﻭ ﻧﻴﺰﻩ‪ ،‬ﺻﻔﻮﻑ ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﺭﺍ ﻣﻲ ﺷﻜﺎﻓﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﭘﻴﺶ ﻣﻲ ﺭﻓﺘﻨﺪ‪ ،‬ﭘﺸﺖ ﺳﺮﺷﺎﻥ ﺯﻣﻴﻦ ﺍﺯ‬
‫ﻛﺸﺘﻪ ﻫﺎ ﻭ ﺯﺧﻤﻲ ﻫﺎ ﭘﻮﺷﻴﺪﻩ ﻣﻲ ﺷﺪ‪ .‬ﺭﻭﺑﺮﻭ ﻭ ﺍﻃﺮﺍﻓﺸﺎﻥ ﭘﻴﺎﺩﻩ ﻫﺎ ﻭ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﻛﻮﻓﻲ‪ ،‬ﻭ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﺁﻧﻘﺪﺭ ﺟﻠﻮ ﻣﻲ ﺭﻓﺘﻨﺪ ﻛﻪ ﺩﺭ ﻣﺤﺎﺻﺮﻩ‬
‫ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ ﻗﺮﺍﺭ ﻣﻲ ﮔﺮﻓﺘﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﻣﺪﺍﻓﻌﺎﻥ ﻫﺎﺷﻤﻲ ﺩﺭ ﻣﻘﺎﺑﻞ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺍﺯ ﻧﻔﻮﺫ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺟﻠﻮﮔﻴﺮﻱ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﻛﺒﺮ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ ﺩﺭﻭﻥ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻣﻬﺎﺟﻢ ﻣﻲ‬
‫ﺗﺎﺧﺖ ﻭ ﺑﺎﺯ ﻣﻲ ﮔﺸﺖ‪ .‬ﺁﻧﻘﺪﺭ ﺗﻠﻔﺎﺕ ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ ﺳﻨﮕﻴﻦ ﺷﺪ ﻛﻪ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻥ ﻋﻘﺐ ﻧﺸﻴﻨﻲ ﺻﺎﺩﺭ ﮔﺸﺖ‪.‬‬
‫ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﻋﻘﺐ ﻧﺸﺴﺖ ﻭ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺣﻤﻼﺕ ﺑﻌﺪﻱ ﺁﻣﺎﺩﻩ ﻣﻲ ﺷﺪ‪ .‬ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﻛﻴﺮ)ﻉ( ﭼﻨﺪﻳﻦ ﺯﺧﻢ ﺑﺮ ﭘﻴﻜﺮ ﺩﺍﺷﺖ ﻭ ﺧﻮﻥ ﺍﺯ ﺑﺪﻧﺸﺎﻥ‬
‫ﺟﺎﺭﻱ ﺑﻮﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﺷــﻜﻞ ﺷــﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ – 16‬ﺣﻀــﺮﺕ ﻋﻠــﻲ ﺍﻛﺒــﺮ)ﻉ(‬ ‫ﻓﻘﻂ ﻳﻚ ﺟﺮﻋﻪ ﺁﺏ‪ ،‬ﻗﺪﺭﻱ ﺍﺯ ﻋﻄﺶ ﺧﻮﻧﺮﻳﺰﻱ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺎﺳﺖ ﻭ ﻛﺎﺭ ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﺭﺍ ﺳﺨﺖ ﺗﺮ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩ‪ ،‬ﺍﻣﺎ ﺩﻳﮕﺮ ﺁﺑﻲ ﺩﺭ ﻣﺸﻜﻬﺎ ﺑﺎﻗﻲ‬
‫ﺷﻤﺸــﻴﺮ ﻣﻲ ﺯﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺩﺭ ﻣﻴﺎﻥ ﻣﻬﺎﺟﻤﺎﻥ ﺭﺧﻨﻪ ﻣﻲ‬ ‫ﻧﻤﺎﻧﺪﻩ ﺑﻮﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺍﻳﺸــﺎﻥ ﭼﻨﺪﻳﻦ ﺑﺎﺭ ﺗﺎ ﻣﻴﺎﻧﻪ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﻣﻬﺎﺟﻤﺎﻥ‬
‫ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﻛﺒﺮ)ﻉ( ﻋﺮﻕ ﺭﻳﺰﺍﻥ ﻭ ﺧﻮﻥ ﺭﻳﺰﺍﻥ‪ ،‬ﺑﺎ ﺗﻤﺎﻡ ﺧﺴﺘﮕﻲ ﻭ ﺗﺸﻨﮕﻲ ﻭ ﺑﺎ ﺩﺭﺩ ﺯﺧﻤﻬﺎﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺭﺍ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺩﻓﺎﻉ ﺩﺭ ﺑﺮﺍﺑﺮ‬
‫ﭘﻴﺸﺮﻭﻱ ﻛﺮﺩﻩ ﻭ ﺑﺴــﻴﺎﺭﻱ ﺭﺍ ﺍﺯ ﭘﺎﻱ ﺩﺭﺁﻭﺭﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ‬
‫ﺳﭙﺲ ﺩﻭﺑﺎﺭﻩ ﺑﻪ ﺻﻒ ﻣﺪﺍﻓﻌﺎﻥ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﭘﻴﻮﺳﺘﻨﺪ‪.‬‬ ‫ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺑﻌﺪﻱ ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﺁﻣﺎﺩﻩ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻧﺪﻫﺎﻥ ﺳــﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺍﺯ ﺍﻳﻦ ﻣﻮﺿﻮﻉ ﺑﻪ ﺷــﺪﺕ‬
‫ﺧﺸــﻤﮕﻴﻦ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﭘﻴﻮﺳــﺘﻪ ﺟﻨﮕﺎﻭﺭﺍﻧﻲ ﺭﺍ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ‬
‫ﺗﻮﻗﻒ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﻛﺒﺮ)ﻉ( ﮔﺴﻴﻞ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺍﻣﺎ‬
‫ﺍﻳﻦ ﻣﻴﺪﺍﻥ ﻣﻤﻠﻮ ﺍﺯ ﺍﺟﺴــﺎﺩ ﺟﻨﮕﺠﻮﻳﺎﻧﻲ ﺑﻮﺩ ﻛﻪ ﺑﻪ‬
‫ﻣﻘﺎﺑﻠﻪ ﺁﻥ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ)ﻉ( ﺁﻣﺪﻩ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬

‫‪32‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪33‬‬
‫ﻛﻤﻴﻦ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﻛﺒﺮ)ﻉ(‬
‫ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻧﺪﻫﺎﻥ ﻭ ﺟﻨﮕﺎﻭﺭﺍﻥ ﻧﺎﻣﻲ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺑﻪ ﻳﻜﺪﻳﮕﺮ ﻣﺘﺬﻛﺮ ﻣﻲ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ ﻛﻪ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺷﻜﺴﺘﻦ ﺳﺪ ﺩﻓﺎﻋﻲ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺍﺑﺘﺪﺍ ﺑﺎﻳﺪ ﺟﻨﮕﺠﻮﻱ‬
‫ﻗﻬﺮﻣﺎﻥ ﻫﺎﺷﻤﻲ‪ ،‬ﻓﺮﺯﻧﺪ ﺩﻟﻴﺮ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ( ﺭﺍ ﺍﺯ ﭘﺎﻱ ﺩﺭﺁﻭﺭﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺑﻌﺪﻱ ﺧﻴﻠﻲ ﺯﻭﺩ ﺁﻏﺎﺯ ﺷﺪ ﻭ ﺻﻒ ﻣﺪﺍﻓﻌﺎﻥ ﻫﺎﺷﻤﻲ ﺟﻠﻮ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺭﺍ ﺳﺪ ﻛﺮﺩ‪ .‬ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﻛﺒﺮ)ﻉ( ﻓﺮﻳﺎﺩ ﺯﺩﻧﺪ‪:‬‬
‫ﻣﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ ﺍﺑﻦ ﻋﻠﻲ ﻫﺴﺘﻢ‪ ،‬ﺳﻮﮔﻨﺪ ﺑﻪ ﺧﺪﺍﻭﻧﺪ ﻋﺰ ﻭ ﺟﻞ ﻛﻪ ﻣﺎ ﺍﺯ ﻫﺮ ﻛﺲ ﺩﻳﮕﺮﻱ ﺑﻪ ﭘﻴﺎﻣﺒﺮ)ﺹ( ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻜﺘﺮﻳﻢ‪ ،‬ﻣﻦ ﺍﻣﺮﻭﺯ‬
‫ﻫﻤﭽﻮﻥ ﻳﻚ ﺟﻮﺍﻥ ﻫﺎﺷﻤﻲ ﻋﻠﻮﻱ‪ ،‬ﺍﺯ ﭘﺪﺭﻡ ﺩﺭ ﺑﺮﺍﺑﺮ ﺻﺪﻣﺎﺕ‪ ،‬ﺩﻓﺎﻉ ﻣﻲ ﻛﻨﻢ‪.‬‬
‫ﺍﻳﻦ ﺭﺟﺰ ﺭﺍ ﺑﺎ ﺻﺪﺍﻱ ﺑﻠﻨﺪ ﺗﻜﺮﺍﺭ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺩﺭﻭﻥ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻣﻬﺎﺟﻢ ﺗﺎﺧﺘﻨﺪ‪ .‬ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻥ ﻳﻜﻲ ﻳﻜﻲ ﺑﺮ ﺯﻣﻴﻦ ﻣﻲ ﺍﻓﺘﺎﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺟﻨﮕﺎﻭﺭﺍﻥ ﻭ‬
‫ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻧﺪﻫﺎﻥ ﺑﺮﺧﻲ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﻭ ﺑﺮﺧﻲ ﺗﻚ ﺗﻚ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺗﻮﻗﻒ ﻓﺮﺯﻧﺪ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ( ﭘﻴﺶ ﻣﻲ ﺗﺎﺧﺘﻨﺪ‪ .‬ﺍﻣﺎ ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻚ ﺷﺪﻥ ﻫﻤﺎﻥ ﻭ ﺍﺯ‬
‫ﭘﺎﻱ ﺩﺭﺁﻣﺪﻥ ﻫﻤﺎﻥ‪.‬‬
‫ﺟﻨﮕﺎﻭﺭﻱ ﺑﺮ ﺭﻭﻱ ﺟﻨﮕﺎﻭﺭ ﻗﺒﻠﻲ ﺳﻘﻮﻁ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩ ﻭ ﺍﺳﺒﻬﺎ ﺑﺪﻭﻥ ﺳﻮﺍﺭ ﺍﺯ ﺻﺤﻨﻪ ﻣﻲ ﮔﺮﻳﺨﺘﻨﺪ‪ .‬ﺁﻧﻘﺪﺭ ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩ ﺍﺯ ﭘﺎﻱ ﺩﺭﺁﻣﺪﮔﺎﻥ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ‬
‫ﻣﻬﺎﺟﻢ ﺯﻳﺎﺩ ﺷﺪ‪ ،‬ﻛﻪ ﺩﻳﮕﺮ ﻛﻤﺘﺮ ﻛﺴﻲ ﺟﺮﺍﺕ ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻚ ﺷﺪﻥ ﺑﻪ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﻛﺒﺮ)ﻉ( ﺭﺍ ﺑﺨﻮﺩ ﻣﻲ ﺩﺍﺩ‪ .‬ﺣﻀﺮﺕ)ﻉ( ﭼﻨﺪﻳﻦ ﺑﺎﺭ ﺑﻪ‬
‫ﺩﺭﻭﻥ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﻧﻔﻮﺫ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺩﻭﺑﺎﺭﻩ ﺑﻪ ﺻﻒ ﻣﺪﺍﻓﻌﺎﻥ ﺑﺎﺯﮔﺸﺘﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺯﺧﻤﻲ‪ ،‬ﺗﺸﻨﻪ‪ ،‬ﺧﺴﺘﻪ ﻭﻟﻲ ﺍﺳﺘﻮﺍﺭ ﻭ ﻣﺤﻜﻢ‪ ،‬ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺁﺧﺮﻳﻦ ﺑﺎﺭ ﺑﻪ ﺩﺭﻭﻥ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺗﺎﺧﺘﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺑﻪ ﭘﻴﺶ ﻣﻲ ﺭﻓﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻥ ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﺭﺍ ﻧﻘﺶ ﺯﻣﻴﻦ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺑﻪ ﻣﻴﺎﻧﻪ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﻣﻬﺎﺟﻢ ﺭﺳﻴﺪﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﮔﺮﻭﻫﻲ ﺍﺯ ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻥ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﺭﺍ ﺩﺭ ﺑﺮ‬
‫ﮔﺮﻓﺘﻪ ﻭ ﺍﺯ ﻫﺮ ﻃﺮﻑ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻧﺪﻩ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﺍﺯ ﭘﺸﺖ ﺳﺮ ﻳﻚ ﺿﺮﺑﺖ ﺷﻤﺸﻴﺮ ﺑﺮ ﺳﺮ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ)ﻉ( ﻭﺍﺭﺩ ﻧﻤﻮﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﻛﺒﺮ)ﻉ( ﺣﺎﻝ ﺭﻓﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﺩﺳﺖ ﺩﺭ ﮔﺮﻳﺒﺎﻥ ﺍﺳﺐ ﺍﻧﺪﺍﺧﺘﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺍﺳﺐ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ)ﻉ( ﻫﻤﭽﻨﺎﻥ ﺑﻪ ﭘﻴﺶ ﻣﻲ ﺗﺎﺧﺖ‪ ،‬ﻭ ﺍﺯ ﻛﻨﺎﺭ ﻫﺮ ﻛﺲ ﻣﻲ ﮔﺬﺷﺖ‪ ،‬ﺿﺮﺑﻪ ﺷﻤﺸﻴﺮ‪ ،‬ﻧﻴﺰﻩ ﻳﺎ ﺗﻴﺮﻱ ﺑﺮ ﭘﻴﻜﺮ ﭘﺎﻙ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ)ﻉ(‬
‫ﺷــﻜﻞ ﺷــﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -17‬ﻫﻨﮕﺎﻣﻴﻜــﻪ ﺣﻀــﺮﺕ ﻋﻠﻲ‬
‫ﺍﻛﺒﺮ)ﻉ( ﺧﺴــﺘﻪ ﻭ ﺗﺸﻨﻪ ﺷــﺪ‪ ،‬ﺩﺭ ﻳﻜﻲ ﺍﺯ ﺣﻤﻼﺕ‬ ‫ﻣﻲ ﺯﺩ‪ .‬ﺗﻴﺮﻱ ﺍﺯ ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻚ ﺑﺮ ﮔﻠﻮﻱ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ)ﻉ( ﻧﺸﺴﺖ‪.‬‬
‫ﺑﺮﻕ ﺁﺳــﺎﻱ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺩﺭ ﻣﺤﺎﺻﺮﻩ ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻥ ﻛﻮﻓﻲ‪ ،‬ﺍﺯ‬
‫ﭘﺸــﺖ ﺑﻪ ﺿﺮﺑﺖ ﺷﻤﺸﻴﺮﻱ ﻣﺠﺮﻭﺡ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺭﻭﻱ‬
‫ﺍﺳﺐ ﺍﺯ ﺣﺎﻝ ﺭﻓﺘﻨﺪ‪ .‬ﺍﺳﺒﺸﺎﻥ ﺑﻪ ﭘﻴﺶ ﻣﻲ ﺗﺎﺧﺖ ﻭ‬
‫ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ ﺁﻧﻘﺪﺭ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ)ﻉ( ﺷﻤﺸﻴﺮ ﻭ ﻧﻴﺰﻩ ﺯﺩﻧﺪ ﻛﻪ‬
‫ﭘﻴﻜﺮ ﺷﺎﻥ ﭼﺎﻙ ﭼﺎﻙ ﺷﺪﻩ ﺑﻮﺩ‪.‬‬

‫‪34‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪35‬‬
‫ﺟﺎﻣﻲ ﺍﺯ ﺩﺳﺖ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ)ﺹ(‬
‫ﻭﻗﺘﻲ ﻛﻪ ﺍﺳﺐ ﺑﻪ ﺁﺧﺮﻳﻦ ﺻﻒ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﻣﻬﺎﺟﻢ ﺭﺳﻴﺪ‪ ،‬ﭘﻴﻜﺮ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ)ﻉ( ﭼﺎﻙ ﭼﺎﻙ ﺑﻮﺩ ﻭ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ)ﻉ( ﺩﺭ ﻣﻴﺎﻧﻪ ﻣﻴﺪﺍﻥ ﻧﺒﺮﺩ‪ ،‬ﺍﺯ ﺭﻭﻱ‬
‫ﺍﺳﺐ ﺑﺮ ﺯﻣﻴﻦ ﺍﻓﺘﺎﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺑﺎﻧﮓ ﺯﺩﻧﺪ ﻛﻪ‪:‬‬
‫ﺍﻱ ﭘﺪﺭ‪ ،‬ﺍﻳﻦ ﺟﺪ ﻣﻦ ﭘﻴﺎﻣﺒﺮ)ﺹ( ﺍﺳﺖ ﻛﻪ ﺟﺎﻣﻲ ﺁﻧﭽﻨﺎﻥ ﻟﺒﺮﻳﺰ ﻭ ﮔﻮﺍﺭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻦ ﻧﻮﺷﺎﻧﻴﺪ ﻛﻪ ﺩﻳﮕﺮ ﺗﺸﻨﻪ ﻧﻤﻲ ﺷﻮﻡ‪ .‬ﺑﺸﺘﺎﺏ ﺑﺸﺘﺎﺏ ﻛﻪ‬
‫ﺟﺎﻣﻲ ﻧﻴﺰ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺗﻮ ﺁﻣﺎﺩﻩ ﺍﺳﺖ ﺗﺎ ﺗﻮ ﻧﻴﺰ ﺑﻨﻮﺷﻲ‪.‬‬
‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﻓﺮﺯﻧﺪ ﺑﺮﻭﻣﻨﺪ ﺷﺎﻥ ﻣﻲ ﺗﺎﺧﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻣﻬﺎﺟﻢ ﺑﻪ ﻋﻘﺐ ﺑﺮ ﻣﻲ ﮔﺸﺖ‪.‬‬
‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺩﺭ ﻣﻴﺎﻧﻪ ﻣﻴﺪﺍﻥ ﻧﺒﺮﺩ‪ ،‬ﭘﻴﻜﺮ ﻓﺮﺯﻧﺪ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺭﺍ ﺩﺭ ﺁﻏﻮﺵ ﮔﺮﻓﺘﻪ‪ ،‬ﺻﻮﺭﺕ ﺑﺮ ﺻﻮﺭﺗﺸﺎﻥ ﻧﻬﺎﺩﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺳﻴﻨﻪ ﺑﺮ ﺳﻴﻨﻪ ﺷﺎﻥ ﻓﺸﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺍﺷﻚ‬
‫ﺍﺯ ﭼﺸﻤﺎﻧﺸﺎﻥ ﺟﺎﺭﻱ ﻭ ﺻﺪﺍﻱ ﮔﺮﻳﻪ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺍﻭﻟﻴﻦ ﺑﺎﺭ ﺷﻨﻴﺪﻩ ﺷﺪ‪ .‬ﻣﻲ ﮔﻔﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﻣﻲ ﮔﺮﻳﺴﺘﻨﺪ‪:‬‬
‫‪ ...‬ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﺯ ﺗﻮ‪ ،‬ﺧﺎﻙ ﺑﺮ ﺳﺮ ﺍﻳﻦ ﺩﻧﻴﺎ ﺑﺎﺩ‪...‬‬
‫ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺯﻳﻨﺐ)ﺱ( ﺩﻭﺍﻥ ﺩﻭﺍﻥ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺷﺘﺎﻓﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺭﺍ ﺑﺮ ﭘﻴﻜﺮ ﺑﺮﺍﺩﺭ ﺯﺍﺩﻩ ﺍﻧﺪﺍﺧﺘﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺷﻜﻞ ﺷﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -18‬ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﻛﺒﺮ)ﻉ( ﺍﺯ ﺑﻨﺪﮔﺎﻥ‬
‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺯﻳﻨﺐ)ﺱ( ﺭﺍ ﺍﺯ ﺟﺎﻱ ﺑﻠﻨﺪ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﺑﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺳﭙﺲ ﺑﻪ ﺟﻨﮕﺠﻮﻳﺎﻥ ﻫﺎﺷﻤﻲ ﻓﺮﻣﻮﺩﻧﺪ ﻛﻪ ﭘﻴﻜﺮ ﭘﺎﻙ‬
‫ﻣﺨﻠﺺ ﺧﺪﺍﻭﻧﺪ ﺍﺳــﺖ‪ .‬ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﺷﺨﺼﻴﺘﻲ ﺑﺴﻴﺎﺭ ﺑﺎ‬
‫ﻛﺮﺍﻣﺖ‪ ،‬ﺩﺍﻧﺸــﻤﻨﺪ ﻭ ﭘﺮﻫﻴﺰﮔﺎﺭ ﺑﻮﺩﻩ ﺍﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﺍﺯ‬ ‫ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﻛﺒﺮ)ﻉ( ﺭﺍ ﺍﺯ ﻣﻴﺪﺍﻥ ﻧﺒﺮﺩ ﺗﺎ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﺣﻤﻞ ﻛﻨﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﻓﻀﺎﺋﻞ ﻭ ﻛﻤﺎﻻﺕ ﺑﺴــﻴﺎﺭﻱ ﺑﺮﺧﻮﺭﺩﺍﺭ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﻫﻤﻴﻦ‬ ‫ﺍﻛﻨﻮﻥ ﻓﻘﻂ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ(‪ ،‬ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ( ﻭ ‪ 9‬ﺟﻨﮕﺠﻮﻱ ﺩﻳﮕﺮ ﺑﺎﻗﻲ ﻣﺎﻧﺪﻩ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺳﺒﺐ ﻧﺰﺩ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ( ﺟﺎﻳﮕﺎﻩ ﻭﻳﮋﻩ ﺍﻱ‬
‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺧﺪﺍﺣﺎﻓﻈﻲ ﺑﻪ ﺩﺭﺏ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﺍﺵ ﺁﻣﺪ ﻭ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﺻﻐﺮ)ﻉ( ﺭﺍ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺑﻮﺳﻴﺪﻥ ﺩﺭ ﺑﻐﻞ ﮔﺮﻓﺖ ﻭ ﺗﻴﺮ ﺳﻪ ﺳﺮﻱ ﺑﻪ‬
‫ﺩﺍﺷﺘﻨﺪ‪ .‬ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻑ ﺍﺳﺖ ﻛﻪ ﺷﻴﻌﻴﺎﻥ ﺗﺼﻮﺭ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‬
‫ﻛﻪ ﺍﻳﺸــﺎﻥ ﭘﺲ ﺍﺯ ﭘﺪﺭ‪ ،‬ﭘﻴﺸــﻮﺍﻱ ﭼﻬﺎﺭﻡ ﺧﻮﺍﻫﻨﺪ‬ ‫ﮔﻠﻮﻱ ﺁﻥ ﻧﻮﺯﺍﺩ ﻓﺮﻭﺩ ﺁﻣﺪ ﻭ ﺷﻬﻴﺪ ﺷﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺑﻮﺩ‪ .‬ﺷــﺨﺼﻴﺖ ﺍﻳﺸــﺎﻥ ﺩﺭ ﻣﻴﺎﻥ ﻣــﺮﺩﻡ ﺁﻥ ﺯﻣﺎﻥ‬
‫ﻛﺎﻣﻼ ﺷــﻨﺎﺧﺘﻪ ﺷــﺪﻩ ﺑﻮﺩﻩ ﻭ ﻣﺎﻧﻨــﺪ ﭘﺪﺭ ﻭ ﻋﻤﻮﻱ‬
‫ﺑﺰﺭﮔﻮﺍﺭﺷــﺎﻥ‪ ،‬ﻧﺎﻣﺸــﺎﻥ ﺩﺭ ﺯﻣــﺮﻩ ﻣﻬﻤﺘﺮﻳﻦ ﺍﻓﺮﺍﺩ‬
‫ﺑﻨﻲ ﻫﺎﺷﻢ ﻗﺮﺍﺭ ﺩﺍﺷــﺖ‪ .‬ﮔﺮﻳﻪ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻭ‬
‫ﺣﻀــﺮﺕ ﺯﻳﻨﺐ)ﺱ( ﺑﻪ ﻫﻨﮕﺎﻡ ﺷــﻬﺎﺩﺕ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ‬
‫ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﻛﺒﺮ)ﻉ(‪ ،‬ﺑﻪ ﺳــﺒﺐ ﺻﺪﻣﻪ ﺍﻱ ﺍﺳــﺖ ﻛﻪ ﺑﺎ ﺍﺯ‬
‫ﺩﺳﺖ ﺭﻓﺘﻦ ﺷــﺨﺼﻴﺘﻲ ﺑﺰﺭگ ﻭ ﺍﺳﺘﻮﺍﺭ ﺑﻪ ﺍﺳﻼﻡ‬
‫ﻭﺍﺭﺩ ﺷــﺪﻩ ﺑﻮﺩ‪ .‬ﺍﻳﻦ ﺿﺎﻳﻌﻪ ﺑﺴﻴﺎﺭ ﺑﺰﺭگ ﺑﺮ ﻋﺘﺮﺕ‬
‫ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ)ﺹ( ﺑﺴﻴﺎﺭ ﮔﺮﺍﻥ ﺑﻮﺩ‪.‬‬

‫‪36‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪37‬‬
‫ﻣﺎﻩ ﭘﺎﺭﻩ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍ‬
‫ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻗﺎﺳﻢ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺣﺴﻦ ﻧﻮﺟﻮﺍﻥ‪ ،‬ﺯﺭﻫﻲ ﻧﺒﻮﺩ ﻛﻪ ﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯﻩ ﺷﺎﻥ ﺑﺎﺷﺪ‪ ،‬ﻫﻤﻪ ﺯﺭﻩ ﻫﺎ ﺑﺮﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﺑﺰﺭگ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺷﻤﺸﻴﺮ ﺑﺪﺳﺖ ﻭ‬
‫ﺳﻮﺍﺭﻩ ﺑﺮ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻣﻬﺎﺟﻢ ﺗﺎﺧﺘﻨﺪ‪ .‬ﭼﻨﺪ ﻧﻔﺮ ﺭﺍ ﺍﺯ ﭘﺎﻱ ﺩﺭﺁﻭﺭﺩﻩ ﻭ ﻣﺤﺎﺻﺮﻩ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺷﺠﺎﻋﺎﻧﻪ ﻣﻲ ﺟﻨﮕﻴﺪﻧﺪ ﻛﻪ ﻳﻜﻲ ﺍﺯ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻧﺪﻫﺎﻥ ﻛﻮﻓﻲ‬
‫ﺑﻪ ﺗﺎﺧﺖ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻮﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﺁﻣﺪ ﻭ ﺑﺎ ﺷﻤﺸﻴﺮ ﺑﺮ ﺳﺮ ﻣﺒﺎﺭﻛﺶ ﺯﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻗﺎﺳﻢ ﺑﺎ ﺻﺪﺍﺋﻲ ﺑﻠﻨﺪ ﻋﻤﻮﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﺭﺍ ﺻﺪﺍ ﺯﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ ﺳﺮﻋﺖ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻭ ﺭﺳﺎﻧﻴﺪﻩ ﻭ ﺑﺎ ﺷﻤﺸﻴﺮ ﺑﻪ ﺿﺎﺭﺏ‬
‫ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻗﺎﺳﻢ)ﻉ( ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺑﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺿﺎﺭﺏ ﻛﻮﻓﻲ ﺩﺳﺘﺶ ﺭﺍ ﺩﺭ ﻣﻘﺎﺑﻞ ﺿﺮﺑﻪ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﮔﺮﻓﺖ ﻭ ﺩﺳﺘﺶ ﻗﻄﻊ ﺷﺪ‪ .‬ﻋﺪﻩ ﺍﻱ ﺍﺯ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ‬
‫ﻛﻮﻓﻲ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻳﻦ ﺳﻮ ﺗﺎﺧﺘﻨﺪ ﻛﻪ ﺿﺎﺭﺏ ﺭﺍ ﻧﺠﺎﺕ ﺩﻫﻨﺪ ﺍﻣﺎ ﺿﺎﺭﺏ‪ ،‬ﺯﻳﺮ ﺳﻢ ﺍﺳﺒﺎﻥ ﺧﻮﺩﻱ ﺟﺎﻥ ﺩﺍﺩ‪ .‬ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻗﺎﺳﻢ)ﻉ( ﺭﺍ ﺩﺭ‬
‫ﺁﻏﻮﺵ ﮔﺮﻓﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﻓﺮﻣﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪:‬‬
‫ﺑﻪ ﺧﺪﺍ ﺳﻮﮔﻨﺪ ﻛﻪ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﻋﻤﻮﻳﺖ ﮔﺮﺍﻥ ﺍﺳﺖ ﻛﻪ ﺍﻭ ﺭﺍ ﺻﺪﺍ ﺑﺰﻧﻲ ﺍﻣﺎ ﺟﻮﺍﺑﺖ ﺭﺍ ﻧﺪﻫﺪ ﻳﺎ ﺍﻳﻨﻜﻪ ﺟﻮﺍﺑﺶ ﺳﻮﺩﻱ ﻧﺪﺍﺷﺘﻪ ﺑﺎﺷﺪ‪ .‬ﺑﻪ ﺧﺪﺍ‬
‫ﺳﻮﮔﻨﺪ ﻛﻪ ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩ ﺩﺷﻤﻨﺎﻧﺶ ﺑﺴﻴﺎﺭ ﺯﻳﺎﺩ ﻭ ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩ ﻳﺎﺭﺍﻧﺶ ﺑﺴﻴﺎﺭ ﺍﻧﺪﻙ ﺍﺳﺖ‪.‬‬
‫ﺁﻧﮕﺎﻩ ﭘﻴﻜﺮ ﭘﺎﻙ ﺑﺮﺍﺩﺭ ﺯﺍﺩﻩ ﺭﺍ ﺩﺭ ﺑﺮﮔﺮﻓﺘﻪ ﻭ ﺩﺭ ﻛﻨﺎﺭ ﭘﻴﻜﺮ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﻛﺒﺮ)ﻉ( ﺟﺎﻱ ﺩﺍﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬

‫ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺷﺮﻳﻌﻪ‬


‫ﺩﺭ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺑﻌﺪﻱ ‪ 3‬ﺑﺮﺍﺩﺭ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ( ﺷﻬﻴﺪ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﻓﺸﺎﺭ ﺯﻳﺎﺩﻱ ﺑﻪ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻭﺍﺭﺩ ﻛﺮﺩ‪ .‬ﻭﻟﻲ ﺑﻪ ﻋﻘﺐ ﺭﺍﻧﺪﻩ‬
‫ﺷﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺑﻼﻓﺎﺻﻠﻪ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ ﻫﻤﺮﺍﻩ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ( ﻭ ﺷﺶ ﺟﻮﺍﻥ ﻫﺎﺷﻤﻲ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺷﺮﻳﻌﻪ ﺗﺎﺧﺘﻨﺪ‪ .‬ﺻﻔﻮﻑ ﭘﺮﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ‬
‫ﺭﺍ ﺷﻜﺎﻓﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﻛﺸﺘﻪ ﻫﺎ ﺭﺍ ﭘﺸﺘﻪ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ( ﺍﺯ ﻣﻴﺎﻥ ﺻﻔﻮﻑ ﻣﺘﻼﺷﻲ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﻧﺨﻠﺴﺘﺎﻥ ﺗﺎﺧﺘﻪ ﻭ ﺳﭙﺲ‬
‫ﺑﻪ ﺳﺮﻋﺖ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﺷﺮﻳﻌﻪ ﺭﺳﺎﻧﺪﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺑﺎ ﺍﺳﺐ ﻭﺍﺭﺩ ﺷﺮﻳﻌﻪ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺳﺮﻳﻌﺎ ﻣﺸﻚ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺭﺍ ﺁﺏ ﻛﺮﺩﻩ ﻭ ﺧﻴﻠﻲ ﺯﻭﺩ ﺑﺎﺯﮔﺸﺘﻨﺪ ﺗﺎ ﺑﻪ‬
‫ﺳﺮﻋﺖ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﺮﺳﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺩﺭ ﻫﻤﻴﻦ ﺍﺛﻨﺎ‪ ،‬ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﻣﻮﻓﻖ ﺷﺪ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﻋﻘﺐ ﺑﺮﺍﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺩﺭ ﻫﻤﻴﻦ ﺯﻣﺎﻥ ﺑﻮﺩ ﻛﻪ ﺗﻴﺮﻱ ﺑﻪ ﺻﻮﺭﺕ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺍﺻﺎﺑﺖ ﻧﻤﻮﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﺷــﻜﻞ ﺷــﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -19‬ﻧﺒــﺮﺩ ﺍﻣــﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻭ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ‬
‫ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ( ﻭ ﻫﻤﺮﺍﻫﺎﻥ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺑﺎﺯ ﻛﺮﺩﻥ ﺻﻔﻮﻑ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ‬
‫ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﻭ ﺩﺳﺘﺮﺳﻲ ﺑﻪ ﺷﺮﻳﻌﻪ‪.‬‬

‫‪38‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪39‬‬
‫ﻛﻤﻴﻦ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺩﺳﺘﺎﻥ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ(‬
‫ﺩﻭ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﻧﻴﺰ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺑﻪ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ( ﺩﺭ ﻣﻴﺎﻥ ﺩﺭﺧﺘﻬﺎ ﻛﻤﻴﻦ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺑﺮﺧﻲ ﺍﺯ ﻛﻤﻴﻦ ﻛﻨﻨﺪﮔﺎﻥ ﺑﺎ ﺷﻤﺸﻴﺮﻫﺎﻱ ﺁﻣﺎﺩﻩ ﺑﺮ ﺭﻭﻱ‬
‫ﻧﺨﻠﻬﺎ ﻣﻨﺘﻈﺮ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻭ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ( ﺑﺎﻧﮓ ﺑﺮﺁﻭﺭﺩﻧﺪ ﻛﻪ‪:‬‬
‫ﻣﻦ ﺍﺯ ﻣﺮگ ﻧﻤﻲ ﻫﺮﺍﺳﻢ ﭼﺮﺍ ﻛﻪ ﻣﺮگ ﭘﺮﻭﺍﺯﺳﺖ‪ ،‬ﻛﻪ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺑﻪ ﭘﻴﺸﻮﺍﺯﺵ ﻣﻲ ﺭﻭﻡ ﺗﺎ ﭘﻴﻜﺮﻡ ﺭﺍ ﺩﺭ ﻣﻴﺎﻥ ﺍﻧﺒﻮﻩ ﺷﻤﺸﻴﺮﻫﺎ ﺑﭙﻮﺷﺎﻧﻢ‪،‬‬
‫ﺟﺎﻧﻢ ﺳﭙﺮ ﺟﺎﻥ ﻣﺼﻄﻔﺎﻱ ﭘﺎﻙ ﺳﺮﺷﺖ ﺍﺳﺖ‪ ،‬ﻣﻦ ﻫﻤﺎﻥ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ ﻫﺴﺘﻢ ﻛﻪ ﺳﻘﺎ ﺷﺪﻡ ﻭ ﺩﺭ ﺭﻭﺯ ﻣﻼﻗﺎﺕ ﭘﺮﻭﺭﻭﺩﮔﺎﺭﻡ‪ ،‬ﻧﮕﺮﺍﻥ ﻫﻴﭻ‬
‫ﺷﺮﻱ ﻧﺨﻮﺍﻫﻢ ﺑﻮﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﺣﻀﺮﺕ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ ﻧﺨﻠﺴﺘﺎﻥ ﻭﺍﺭﺩ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﺗﺎﺧﺘﻨﺪ‪ ،‬ﺗﺎ ﺑﻪ ﺻﻔﻮﻑ ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﺭﺳﻴﺪﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﻭ ﭘﻴﺎﺩﻩ ﻫﺎ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻭ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ‬
‫ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺩﺭ ﺑﻴﻦ ﺯﻣﻴﻦ ﻭ ﻧﺨﻠﻬﺎ‪ ،‬ﺟﻨﮕﻲ ﺳﺨﺖ ﺩﺭ ﮔﺮﻓﺖ‪ .‬ﺣﻀﺮﺕ)ﻉ( ﻛﻤﻴﻦ ﺍﻭﻝ ﺭﺍ ﺷﻜﺎﻓﺖ ﻭﻟﻲ ﺩﺳﺖ ﺭﺍﺳﺖ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﻗﻄﻊ ﺷﺪ‪ ،‬ﺗﻨﻬﺎ‪،‬‬
‫ﺗﺸﻨﻪ ﻭ ﺯﺧﻤﻲ‪ ،‬ﺑﺎ ﺷﻤﺸﻴﺮﻱ ﺩﺭ ﺩﺳﺖ ﭼﭗ ﺑﻪ ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﻭﺭ ﺷﺪﻩ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺟﻨﮓ ﺍﺩﺍﻣﻪ ﺩﺍﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺑﺎ ﺻﺪﺍﻱ ﺑﻠﻨﺪ ﻣﻲ ﻓﺮﻣﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪:‬‬
‫ﺳﻮﮔﻨﺪ ﺑﻪ ﺧﺪﺍﻭﻧﺪ ﻋﺰ ﻭ ﺟﻞ‪ ،‬ﺑﺎ ﺁﻧﻜﻪ ﺩﺳﺖ ﺭﺍﺳﺘﻢ ﺭﺍ ﺑﺮﻳﺪﻩ ﺍﻳﺪ‪ ،‬ﺍﻣﺎ ﻣﻦ ﺗﺎ ﺍﺑﺪ ﺍﺯ ﺁﺋﻴﻦ ﺧﻮﻳﺶ ﺣﻤﺎﻳﺖ ﻣﻲ ﻛﻨﻢ‪ ،‬ﻭ ﺍﺯ ﺁﻥ ﭘﻴﺸﻮﺍ ﻛﻪ‬
‫ﻳﻘﻴﻨﻲ ﻭ ﺣﻘﻴﻘﻲ ﺍﺳﺖ‪ ،‬ﭘﻴﺸﻮﺍﺋﻲ ﻛﻪ ﺍﺯ ﻧﺴﻞ ﭘﻴﺎﻣﺒﺮﻱ ﭘﺎﻙ ﻭ ﺍﻣﻴﻦ ﺍﺳﺖ‪.‬‬
‫ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﺣﻠﻘﻪ ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻥ ﺭﺍ ﺷﻜﺎﻓﺘﻪ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺗﺎﺧﺘﻨﺪ‪.‬‬

‫ﺷﻜﻞ ﺷﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -20‬ﺷﻜﺎﻓﺘﻦ ﺻﻔﻮﻑ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﺟﻨﺎﺡ‬


‫ﻋﻤــﺮﻭ ﺍﺑﻦ ﺣﺠﺎﺝ ﻭ ﻧﻔﻮﺫ ﺣﻀــﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ‬
‫ﺳــﻤﺖ ﺷﺮﻳﻌﻪ‪ ،‬ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻭ ‪ 6‬ﻧﻔﺮ ﺳﻮﺍﺭ ﻫﺎﺷﻤﻲ‪ ،‬ﺩﺭ‬
‫ﻛﻨﺎﺭ ﻧﺨﻠﺴــﺘﺎﻥ ﺑﺎ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﻋﻤﺮﻭ ﺑﻦ ﺣﺠﺎﺝ ﺩﺭﮔﻴﺮ‬
‫ﺷﺪﻩ ﻭ ﻣﻨﺘﻈﺮ ﺑﺎﺯﮔﺸﺖ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ( ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬

‫‪40‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪41‬‬
‫ﺗﻴﺮﻱ ﺑﺮ ﻣﺸﻚ ﺁﺏ‬
‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻫﻤﭽﻨﺎﻥ ﻣﻲ ﺟﻨﮕﻴﺪﻧﺪ ﺍﻣﺎ ﻫﻨﻮﺯ ﻧﻤﻲ ﺗﻮﺍﻧﺴﺘﻨﺪ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﺑﺮﺍﺩﺭ ﺑﺮﺳﺎﻧﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﻫﻨﮕﺎﻡ ﺭﺳﻴﺪﻥ ﺑﻪ ﻛﻤﻴﻦ ﺩﻭﻡ‪ ،‬ﺧﻮﻥ ﺍﺯ ﺩﺳﺖ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ( ﺟﺎﺭﻱ ﺑﻮﺩ‪ ،‬ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﺑﺎ ﻳﻮﺭﺵ ﭘﺮ ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩ ﺩﺳﺖ ﭼﭗ ﺁﻥ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺭﺍ‬
‫ﻧﻴﺰ ﺍﺯ ﻧﺎﺣﻴﻪ ﺳﺎﻋﺪ ﻗﻄﻊ ﻛﺮﺩ‪ .‬ﺣﻀﺮﺕ)ﻉ( ﺩﻳﮕﺮ ﺍﻣﻜﺎﻥ ﺩﻓﺎﻉ ﺍﺯ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺭﺍ ﻧﺪﺍﺷﺘﻨﺪ ﺍﻣﺎ ﺍﺯ ﻣﻴﺎﻥ ﺍﻳﻦ ﻛﻤﻴﻨﮕﺎﻩ ﻧﻴﺰ ﮔﺮﻳﺨﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﻓﺮﻳﺎﺩ ﻣﻲ‬
‫ﺯﺩﻧﺪ ﻛﻪ‪:‬‬
‫ﺍﻱ ﻧﻔﺲ‪ ،‬ﺍﺯ ﻛﺎﻓﺮﺍﻥ ﻧﻬﺮﺍﺱ‪ ،‬ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺧﻮﺩ ﻣﮋﺩﻩ ﺑﺨﺸﺶ ﭘﺮﻭﺭﺩﮔﺎﺭ ﺟﺒﺎﺭ ﺭﺍ ﺑﺪﻩ‪ ،‬ﺩﺭ ﻛﻨﺎﺭ ﭘﻴﺎﻣﺒﺮﻱ ﻭﺍﻻ ﻣﻘﺎﻡ ﻭ ﺍﻧﺘﺨﺎﺏ ﺷﺪﻩ‪ ،‬ﺍﻳﻦ ﻛﺎﻓﺮﺍﻥ‬
‫ﺑﺨﺎﻃﺮ ﻃﻐﻴﺎﻧﺸﺎﻥ ﺩﺳﺖ ﭼﭗ ﻣﺮﺍ ﻗﻄﻊ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﭘﺲ ﺍﻱ ﭘﺮﻭﺭﺩﮔﺎﺭ ﻣﻦ‪ ،‬ﺁﻧﺎﻥ ﺭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﺣﺮﺍﺭﺕ ﺁﺗﺶ ﺟﻬﻨﻢ ﺑﺮﺳﺎﻥ‪.‬‬
‫ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ( ﺩﻳﮕﺮ ﻛﻨﺘﺮﻟﻲ ﺑﺮ ﻣﺴﻴﺮ ﺍﺳﺐ ﺧﻮﻳﺶ ﻧﺪﺍﺷﺘﻨﺪ‪ ،‬ﺧﻮﻥ ﺍﺯ ﺩﺳﺘﺎﻥ ﺑﺮﻳﺪﻩ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﻓﻮﺭﺍﻥ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩ ﻭ ﭘﻴﻜﺮ ﻣﺒﺎﺭﻙ ﭘﺮ ﺍﺯ‬
‫ﺯﺧﻤﻬﺎﻱ ﺷﻤﺸﻴﺮ ﻭ ﻧﻴﺰﻩ ﺑﻮﺩ‪ .‬ﺍﺳﺐ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻮﺍﺯﺍﺕ ﺻﻔﻮﻑ ﺩﺷﻤﻨﺎﻥ ﻭ ﺩﺭ ﺍﻣﺘﺪﺍﺩ ﻧﺨﻠﺴﺘﺎﻥ ﻣﻲ ﺗﺎﺧﺖ ﻭ ﺗﻴﺮﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯﺍﻥ ﺑﻄﺮﻑ ﺍﻭ ﺗﻴﺮﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯﻱ‬
‫ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺑﺠﺰ ﺗﻴﺮﻫﺎﻱ ﺩﻳﮕﺮﻱ ﻛﻪ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﺑﺮﺧﻮﺭﺩ ﻛﺮﺩ‪ ،‬ﻧﺎﮔﻬﺎﻥ ﺗﻴﺮﻱ ﺑﻪ ﻣﺸﻚ ﺁﺏ ﺧﻮﺭﺩﻩ ﻭ ﺁﺏ ﺑﺮ ﺭﻭﻱ ﺑﺪﻥ ﺍﺳﺐ ﻭ ﺳﭙﺲ‬
‫ﺑﺮ ﺭﻭﻱ ﺯﻣﻴﻦ ﺭﻳﺨﺖ‪ .‬ﮔﻮﺋﻲ ﺧﻮﻥ ﺩﻝ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ( ﺑﻮﺩ ﻛﻪ ﺑﺮ ﺯﻣﻴﻦ ﻣﻲ ﺭﻳﺨﺖ‪ .‬ﺩﺭ ﺍﻳﻦ ﻟﺤﻈﻪ ﺍﺳﺐ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ)ﻉ( ﺍﺯ ﺣﺮﻛﺖ‬
‫ﺑﺎﺯﺍﻳﺴﺘﺎﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﺧﻮﻥ ﺍﺯ ﺩﺳﺘﺎﻥ ﺑﺮﻳﺪﻩ ﺷﺎﻥ ﻓﻮﺭﺍﻥ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩ ﻭ ﺗﻴﺮﻫﺎ ﭘﻲ ﺩﺭ ﭘﻲ ﺑﺮ ﺑﺪﻥ ﻣﺒﺎﺭﻙ ﻣﻲ ﻧﺸﺴﺖ‪ .‬ﺗﻴﺮﻱ ﺑﺮ ﭼﺸﻢ ﻣﺒﺎﺭﻙ ﺍﺻﺎﺑﺖ ﻧﻤﻮﺩ‪ .‬ﺩﺷﻤﻦ‬
‫ﺍﺯ ﻫﺮ ﻃﺮﻑ ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻚ ﻣﻲ ﺷﺪ‪ .‬ﻣﺤﺎﺻﺮﻩ ﺷﺎﻥ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺷﺪﺕ ﺑﺮ ﭘﻴﻜﺮ ﭘﺎﻛﺸﺎﻥ ﺯﺧﻢ ﺯﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺣﻀﺮﺗﺶ)ﻉ( ﻫﻤﭽﻨﺎﻥ ﺍﺳﺘﻮﺍﺭ ﻭ ﻣﺤﻜﻢ‬
‫ﺑﺮ ﺭﻭﻱ ﺍﺳﺐ ﻧﺸﺴﺘﻪ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺍﻣﺎ ﻳﺎﺭﺍﻱ ﺩﻓﺎﻉ ﺍﺯ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺭﺍ ﻧﺪﺍﺷﺘﻨﺪ‪ .‬ﻧﺎﮔﻬﺎﻥ ﻋﻤﻮﺩ ﺁﻫﻨﻴﻦ ﺳﻨﮕﻴﻨﻲ ﺑﺮ ﺳﺮ ﻣﺒﺎﺭﻙ ﻓﺮﻭﺩ ﺁﻣﺪ ﻭ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ‬
‫ﺑﺎ ﺻﻮﺭﺕ ﺍﺯ ﺭﻭﻱ ﺍﺳﺐ ﺑﻪ ﺯﻣﻴﻦ ﺍﻓﺘﺎﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬

‫ﺷــﻜﻞ ﺷــﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -21‬ﻛﻤﻴــﻦ ﺍﻭﻝ ﺳــﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺩﺭ‬


‫ﻧﺨﻠﺴــﺘﺎﻥ ﻭ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺑﻪ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ(‪ ،‬ﺩﺷﻤﻦ‬
‫ﺍﺯ ﺑﻴﺮﻭﻥ ﻧﺨﻠﺴــﺘﺎﻥ ﺳــﻌﻲ ﺩﺭ ﻋﻘﺐ ﺭﺍﻧﺪﻥ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ‬
‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺩﺍﺷــﺖ ﻭ ﺩﺭ ﻧﺨﻠﺴﺘﺎﻥ ﻧﻴﺰ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ‬
‫ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ( ﻛﻤﻴﻦ ﮔﺬﺍﺷــﺘﻪ ﺑﻮﺩ‪ .‬ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ(‬
‫ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺑﺎﺯﮔﺸــﺖ ﺑﻪ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﺑﺎﻳــﺪ ﺍﺯ ﻣﻴﺎﻥ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ‬
‫ﻫﺎﻱ ﭘﺮ ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩ ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻥ ﻛﻮﻓﻲ ﻣﻲ ﮔﺬﺷﺘﻨﺪ‪.‬‬

‫‪42‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪43‬‬
‫ﻭﺩﺍﻉ ﺳﭙﻪ ﺳﺎﻻﺭﺍﻥ‬
‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻛﻪ ﺍﺯ ﺩﻭﺭ ﺣﻠﻘﻪ ﭘﺮ ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩ ﺩﺷﻤﻨﺎﻥ ﺭﺍ ﻣﻲ ﺩﻳﺪﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﻫﻤﭽﻨﺎﻥ ﻣﻲ ﻛﻮﺷﻴﺪﻧﺪ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ )ﻉ( ﺑﺮﺳﺎﻧﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺍﻣﺎ ﻫﻠﻬﻠﻪ ﻭ ﺷﺎﺩﻱ ﻟﺸﻜﺮ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺳﻌﺪ ﺧﺒﺮ ﺍﺯ ﺷﻬﺎﺩﺕ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ( ﻣﻲ ﺩﺍﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺧﻮﺩ ﺭﺍ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﺭﺳﺎﻧﻴﺪﻩ ﻭ ﺗﻴﺮﻫﺎ ﻭ ﻧﻴﺰﻩ ﻫﺎ ﺭﺍ ﺍﺯ ﺭﻭﻱ ﭘﻴﻜﺮ ﭘﺎﻛﺸﺎﻥ ﻛﻨﺎﺭ ﺯﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﺭﺍ ﺩﺭ ﺁﻏﻮﺵ ﮔﺮﻓﺘﻨﺪ‪ .‬ﺩﺭ ﺣﺎﻟﻴﻜﻪ‬
‫ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ( ﺟﺎﻥ ﺑﻪ ﺟﺎﻥ ﺁﻓﺮﻳﻦ ﺧﻮﻳﺶ ﻣﻲ ﺳﭙﺮﺩ‪ ،‬ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ( ﻣﻮﻳﻪ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ ﻛﻪ‪:‬‬
‫ﺍﻻﻥ ﭘﺸﺘﻢ ﺷﻜﺴﺖ ﻭ ﺗﻮﺍﻧﺎﺋﻴﻢ ﺑﻪ ﺣﺪﺍﻗﻞ ﺭﺳﻴﺪ‪... .‬‬
‫ﺑﺎ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﻭﺩﺍﻉ ﻧﻤﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﭘﻴﻜﺮ ﭘﺎﻙ ﺑﺮﺍﺩﺭ ﺭﺍ ﻫﻤﺮﺍﻩ ﺧﻮﺩ ﻧﺒﺮﺩ‪ .‬ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ( ﺗﻨﻬﺎ ﺷﻬﻴﺪﻱ ﺑﻮﺩ ﻛﻪ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﭘﻴﻜﺮﺵ ﺭﺍ ﺍﺯ‬
‫ﻣﻴﺪﺍﻥ ﻧﺒﺮﺩ ﺑﻪ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﻧﻴﺎﻭﺭﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﭘﻴﻜﺮ ﭘﺎﻙ ﺍﻭ)ﻉ( ﺩﺭ ﻫﻤﻴﻦ ﻧﻘﻄﻪ ﺑﻪ ﺧﺎﻙ ﺳﭙﺮﺩﻩ ﺷﺪ‪.‬‬

‫ﺷــﻜﻞ ﺷــﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -22‬ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻚ ﺷــﺪﻥ ﺍﻣــﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ‬


‫ﻣﺤﻞ ﺷــﻬﺎﺩﺕ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒــﺎﺱ)ﻉ(‪ ،‬ﻭﻗﺘﻴﻜﻪ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ‬
‫ﺣﺴــﻴﻦ)ﻉ( ﺩﺭ ﺑﻴــﺮﻭﻥ ﺍﺯ ﺗﺨﻠﺴــﺘﺎﻥ ﺧــﻮﺩ ﺭﺍ ﺑﻪ‬
‫ﺑﺮﺍﺩﺭﺷــﺎﻥ ﺭﺳﺎﻧﻴﺪﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺩﺷــﻤﻨﺎﻥ ﻛﺎﺭ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺭﺍ ﺗﻤﺎﻡ‬
‫ﻛﺮﺩﻩ ﻭ ﺍﺯ ﻫﺮ ﻃﺮﻑ ﻣﻲ ﮔﺮﻳﺨﺘﻨﺪ‬

‫‪44‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪45‬‬
‫ﻧﻔﻮﺫ ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﻪ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ‬
‫ﻫﻨﻮﺯ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﻧﺮﺳﻴﺪﻩ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ ﻛﻪ ﺑﻪ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻥ ﺷﻤﺮ ﺑﺨﺸﻲ ﺍﺯ ﺳﭙﺎﻫﻴﺎﻥ ﺟﻨﺎﺡ ﺻﺤﺮﺍ‪ ،‬ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺟﺪﻳﺪﻱ ﺭﺍ ﺁﻏﺎﺯ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ‬
‫ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺣﺮﻛﺖ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ ﺳﺮﻋﺖ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺳﭙﺎﻫﻴﺎﻥ ﺷﻤﺮ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﻭﺭ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﻓﻘﻂ ‪ 6‬ﻧﻔﺮ ﺩﻳﮕﺮ ﺑﺎ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ)ﻉ( ﻫﻤﺮﺍﻩ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺩﺭ ﺍﻳﻦ ﻳﻮﺭﺵ ﺿﺮﺑﻪ‬
‫ﺷﻤﺸﻴﺮﻱ ﻛﻼﻫﺨﻮﺩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺭﺍ ﺷﻜﺎﻓﺖ ﻭ ﺧﻮﻥ ﺍﺯ ﺳﺮ ﻣﺒﺎﺭﻙ ﺟﺎﺭﻱ ﺷﺪ‪ .‬ﺩﻓﺎﻉ ﺟﺎﻧﺎﻧﻪ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ(‪ ،‬ﺑﺎﺭ ﺩﻳﮕﺮ ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﺭﺍ ﻋﻘﺐ‬
‫ﺭﺍﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺯﺧﻢ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺭﺍ ﺑﺴﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﻛﻼﻫﺨﻮﺩ ﺩﻳﮕﺮﻱ ﺑﺮ ﺳﺮ ﮔﺬﺍﺷﺘﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺑﻼﻓﺎﺻﻠﻪ ﺑﺨﺶ ﺩﻳﮕﺮﻱ ﺍﺯ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﺷﻤﺮ ﺑﻪ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺷﺠﺎﻋﺎﻧﻪ ﺟﻨﮕﻴﺪﻧﺪ ﻭﻟﻲ ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ ﺧﻴﻠﻲ ﺑﻴﺸﺘﺮ‬
‫ﺑﻮﺩ ﻭ ﻋﺪﻩ ﺍﻱ ﺍﺯﺁﻧﺎﻥ ﻣﻮﻓﻖ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ ﺍﺯ ﻣﻴﺎﻥ ﻣﺪﺍﻓﻌﺎﻥ ﻋﺒﻮﺭ ﻛﺮﺩﻩ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺩﺭﻭﻥ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﻧﻔﻮﺫ ﻛﻨﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺩﺭ ﻫﻤﻴﻦ ﺯﻣﺎﻥ ﻋﺒﺪﺍﷲ ﭘﺴﺮ ﺧﺮﺩ ﺳﺎﻝ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻦ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ( ﺩﻭﻳﺪ ﻭ ﺩﺭ ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻜﻲ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﺑﻪ ﺷﻬﺎﺩﺕ ﺷﺪ‪ .‬ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ(‬
‫ﻭ ‪ 6‬ﻧﻔﺮ ﺟﻨﮕﺠﻮﻱ ﻫﺎﺷﻤﻲ ﺑﻪ ﺷﺪﺕ ﻣﻘﺎﻭﻣﺖ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺩﺭ ﻧﺘﻴﺠﻪ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﺷﻤﺮ ﻋﻘﺐ ﻧﺸﻴﻨﻲ ﻛﺮﺩ‪.‬‬

‫ﺷﻜﻞ ﺷﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -23‬ﻧﻔﻮﺫ ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﻪ ﺩﺍﺧﻞ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ‬


‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ(‪ ،‬ﺑﺎ ﺁﻧﻜﻪ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﺷﻤﺮ ﺑﺴﻴﺎﺭ ﺷﺪﻳﺪ ﺑﻮﺩ‬
‫ﻭ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺭﻏﻢ ﺍﻳﻨﻜﻪ ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ ﺗﻮﺍﻧﺴﺘﻨﺪ ﺍﺯ ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻚ ﺑﻪ‬
‫ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺁﻭﺭﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺍﻣﺎ ﻧﻬﺎﻳﺘﺎ ﻧﺘﻮﺍﻧﺴﺘﻨﺪ‬
‫ﺩﺭ ﺑﺮﺍﺑﺮ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ‪ 7‬ﻧﻔﺮﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺩﻭﺍﻡ ﺑﻴﺎﻭﺭﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺑﻪ‬
‫ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﺗﻠﻔﺎﺕ ﺯﻳﺎﺩ‪ ،‬ﻣﺠﺒﻮﺭ ﺑﻪ ﻋﻘﺐ ﻧﺸﻴﻨﻲ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ‪.‬‬

‫‪46‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪47‬‬
‫ﺣﻤﻼﺕ ﭘﻲ ﺩﺭ ﭘﻲ ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ‬
‫ﭘﻴﺎﺩﻩ ﻧﻈﺎﻡ ﺍﺯ ﭼﭗ ﻭ ﺭﺍﺳﺖ ﺑﺮ ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ ﺗﺎ ﺁﻧﻜﻪ ﺳﻪ ﺟﻨﮕﺠﻮﻱ ﻫﺎﺷﻤﻲ ﺷﻬﻴﺪ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ ﻭ ﻓﻘﻂ ﺳﻪ ﻧﻔﺮ ﺍﺯ ﻫﻤﺮﺍﻫﺎﻥ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﺎﻗﻲ‬
‫ﻣﺎﻧﺪﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﻭﻟﻲ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺩﻭﺑﺎﺭﻩ ﻋﻘﺐ ﻧﺸﺴﺖ‪.‬‬

‫ﺷﻜﻞ ﺷﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -24‬ﻧﻔﻮﺫ ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ ﺑﻪ ﺩﺭﻭﻥ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ‬


‫ﻭ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺍﺯ ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻚ‪ ،‬ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﺷﻤﺮ ﺑﻪ ﺩﺭﻭﻥ‬
‫ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﻧﻔﻮﺫ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺩﺭ ﻣﻴﺎﻥ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ‬
‫ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﻣﺤﺎﺻﺮﻩ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺍﻣﺎ ﻫﺮ ﻛﺲ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ‬
‫ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻚ ﻣﻲ ﺷﺪ‪ ،‬ﺍﺯ ﭘﺎﻱ ﺩﺭ ﻣﻲ ﺁﻣﺪ‪ .‬ﺷﺶ ﺳﻮﺍﺭ‬
‫ﻫﺎﺷﻤﻲ ﻧﻴﺰ ﻫﻤﭽﻨﺎﻥ ﺩﺭ ﻭﺭﻭﺩﻱ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﻣﺎﻧﻊ‬
‫ﻧﻔﻮﺫ ﺑﻴﺸﺘﺮ ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬

‫‪48‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪49‬‬
‫ﺟﻨﮓ ﺩﺭ ﻣﻴﺎﻧﻪ ﻣﻴﺪﺍﻥ‬
‫ﺩﺭ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺑﻌﺪﻱ ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ‪ ،‬ﺍﻣﻜﺎﻥ ﻧﺪﺍﺷﺖ ﻛﻪ ﭼﻬﺎﺭ ﻧﻔﺮ ﺑﺎﺯﻣﺎﻧﺪﮔﺎﻥ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ(‪ ،‬ﺑﺘﻮﺍﻧﻨﺪ ﺩﺭ ﻭﺭﻭﺩﻱ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ‪ ،‬ﺭﺍﻩ ﻧﻔﻮﺫ ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﺭﺍ ﺳﺪ‬
‫ﻛﻨﻨﺪ‪ ،‬ﭘﺲ ﺑﻪ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻥ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﺩﺭ ﻣﻴﺎﻧﻪ ﻣﻴﺪﺍﻥ ﻧﺒﺮﺩ‪ ،‬ﻳﻮﺭﺵ ﺑﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺩﺭ ﺍﻳﻦ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺳﻪ ﺟﻨﮕﺠﻮﻱ ﺷﺠﺎﻉ ﻫﺎﺷﻤﻲ ﻧﻴﺰ ﺑﻪ‬
‫ﺷﻬﺎﺩﺕ ﺭﺳﻴﺪﻩ ﻭ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻛﺎﻣﻼ ﺗﻨﻬﺎ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ‪.‬‬

‫ﺷﻜﻞ ﺷﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -25‬ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ‬


‫ﻫﻤﺮﺍﻩ ﺳﻪ ﻧﻔﺮ ﺟﻨﮕﺠﻮﻱ ﻫﺎﺷﻤﻲ‪ ،‬ﺩﺭ ﺣﺎﻟﻴﻜﻪ‬
‫ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺩﻳﮕﺮﻱ ﺭﺍ ﺁﻏﺎﺯ ﻧﻤﻮﺩﻩ ﺑﻮﺩ‪ ،‬ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ(‬
‫ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺩﻓﺎﻉ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻴﺎﻧﻪ ﻣﻴﺪﺍﻥ ﺗﺎﺧﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﺭﺍ ﺩﺭ‬
‫ﻫﻤﺎﻧﺠﺎ ﻣﺘﻮﻗﻒ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬

‫‪50‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪51‬‬
‫ﻋﺼﺮ ﻋﺎﺷﻮﺭﺍء‬
‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺍﺯ ﻧﺎﺣﻴﻪ ﺳﺮ ﻭ ﺑﺪﻥ ﺯﺧﻤﻲ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺧﻮﻧﺮﻳﺰﻱ ﺑﺮ ﻋﻄﺶ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﻣﻲ ﺍﻓﺰﻭﺩ‪ .‬ﺑﺮ ﺭﻭﻱ ﺑﻠﻨﺪﻱ ﻛﻮﭼﻜﻲ ﻛﻪ ﻣﻘﺎﺑﻞ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻫﺸﺎﻥ‬
‫ﺑﻮﺩ‪ ،‬ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﮔﺮﻓﺘﻨﺪ‪ .‬ﭼﻨﺪ ﺑﺎﺭ ﮔﺮﻭﻫﻬﺎﻱ ﭘﻴﺎﺩﻩ ﻭ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﻩ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﺣﺮﻛﺖ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﺗﺎﺧﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﺑﺎ ﺁﻧﻜﻪ‬
‫ﺗﻨﻬﺎ ﺩﺭ ﻣﻴﺎﻥ ﺁﻧﻬﺎ ﻣﺤﺎﺻﺮﻩ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺍﻣﺎ ﺑﻪ ﻗﺪﺭﻱ ﺍﺯ ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ ﻛﺸﺘﻨﺪ ﻛﻪ ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻥ ﻣﺘﻮﺍﺭﻱ ﺷﺪﻩ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﻫﺮ ﺳﻮ ﻣﻲ ﮔﺮﻳﺨﺘﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺩﺭ ﺍﻳﻦ ﺣﻤﻼﺕ‪ ،‬ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩ ﺯﻳﺎﺩﻱ ﺍﺯ ﺟﻨﮕﺎﻭﺭﺍﻥ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺍﺯ ﭘﺎﻱ ﺩﺭﺁﻣﺪﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﭘﻴﺎﺩﻩ ﻫﺎ ﺍﺯ ﭼﭗ ﻭ ﺍﺯ ﺭﺍﺳﺖ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻳﻮﺭﺵ ﻣﻲ ﺁﻭﺭﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺣﻀﺮﺗﺶ)ﻉ( ﺁﻧﺎﻥ ﺭﺍ ﺑﺎ ﺷﻤﺸﻴﺮ ﭘﺲ ﻣﻲ ﺯﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﭼﻨﺪﻳﻦ ﻫﺰﺍﺭ ﺟﻨﮕﺠﻮﻱ‬
‫ﻣﺴﻠﺢ ﺑﺎ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻋﻘﺐ ﻣﻲ ﻧﺸﺴﺘﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﺯ ﻫﺮ ﺑﺎﺭ ﻋﻘﺐ ﻧﺸﻴﻨﻲ ﻛﻮﻓﻴﺎﻥ‪ ،‬ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺩﻭﺑﺎﺭﻩ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺑﺮ ﺭﻭﻱ ﺑﻠﻨﺪﻱ ﺑﺎﺯ ﻣﻲ ﮔﺸﺘﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺑﻪ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻥ ﻋﻤﺮ ﺳﻌﺪ‪ 4000 ،‬ﺗﻴﺮﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯ ﺍﺯ ﻫﺮ ﻃﺮﻑ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺭﺍ ﺗﻴﺮﺑﺎﺭﺍﻥ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺍﻣﺎ ﺑﻪ ﺩﻟﻴﻞ ﻣﻮﺿﻊ ﮔﻴﺮﻱ ﺣﺴﺎﺏ ﺷﺪﻩ ﻭ ﺳﺮﻋﺖ ﻋﻤﻞ‬
‫ﺣﻀﺮﺗﺶ)ﻉ(‪ ،‬ﺗﻴﺮﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯﺍﻥ ﻧﻤﻲ ﺗﻮﺍﻧﺴﺘﻨﺪ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﺭﺍ ﻫﺪﻑ ﻗﺮﺍﺭ ﺩﻫﻨﺪ‪ .‬ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺯﺧﻤﻲ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﻧﻮﺷﻴﺪﻥ ﺟﺮﻋﻪ ﺍﻱ ﺁﺏ ﻣﻲ ﺗﻮﺍﻧﺴﺖ‬
‫ﺍﻧﺪﻛﻲ ﺍﺯ ﻋﻄﺶ ﺧﻮﻧﺮﻳﺰﻱ ﺭﺍ ﺑﻜﺎﻫﺪ‪ .‬ﺍﮔﺮ ﺟﺮﻋﻪ ﺍﻱ ﺁﺏ ﺑﻪ ﻟﺒﻬﺎﻱ ﺗﺸﻨﻪ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻣﻲ ﺭﺳﻴﺪ‪ ،‬ﻛﺎﺭ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺑﺴﻴﺎﺭ ﺩﺷﻮﺍﺭ ﻣﻲ ﺷﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺷﻜﻞ ﺷﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ 4000-26‬ﺗﻴﺮﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯ ﻛﻮﻓﻲ ﺍﺯ ﭼﻨﺪ‬
‫ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﺯ ﺣﻤﻼﺕ ﭘﻲ ﺩﺭ ﭘﻲ‪ ،‬ﻫﻨﮕﺎﻣﻴﻜﻪ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﺴﻴﺎﺭ ﺧﺴﺘﻪ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺷﺪﺕ ﺗﺸﻨﻪ ﺷﺪﻩ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺗﻴﺮﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯﺍﻥ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﺭﺍ ﻫﺪﻑ ﻗﺮﺍﺭ ﺩﺍﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﻣﻨﻄﻘﻪ‪ ،‬ﺑﺎﺭﺍﻥ ﺗﻴﺮ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻓﺮﻭ ﻣﻲ ﺭﻳﺨﺘﻨﺪ‪،‬‬ ‫ﺗﻴﺮﻱ ﺑﻪ ﺳﺮ ﻣﺒﺎﺭﻙ ﺍﺻﺎﺑﺖ ﻧﻤﻮﺩ‪ ،‬ﺗﻴﺮﻱ ﺑﻪ ﻗﻠﺒﺸﺎﻥ ﻭ ﺳﭙﺲ ﺑﺎﺭﺍﻧﻲ ﺍﺯ ﺗﻴﺮ ﻳﻜﻲ ﻳﻜﻲ ﺑﺮ ﭘﻴﻜﺮ ﭘﺎﻛﺸﺎﻥ ﻓﺮﻭﺩ ﺁﻣﺪ‬
‫ﺑﻘﻴﻪ ﺳﭙﺎﻫﻴﺎﻥ ﻧﻴﺰ ﺍﺯ ﻧﺰﺩﻳﻚ ﺗﺮ‪ ،‬ﺳﻨﮓ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ‬
‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﭘﺮﺗﺎﺏ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺣﻤﻼﺕ ﺩﺷﻤﻦ‬
‫ﺭﺍ ﺩﺭ ﻣﻴﺎﻧﻪ ﻣﻴﺪﺍﻥ ﻣﺘﻮﻗﻒ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺟﻨﮕﺎﻭﺭﺍﻥ‬
‫ﻣﻌﺮﻭﻑ ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺩﺭ ﺷﻠﻮﻏﻲ ﻣﻴﺪﺍﻥ ﺑﻪ ﻗﺼﺪ‬
‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﭘﻴﺶ ﻣﻲ ﺗﺎﺧﺘﻨﺪ ﻭﻟﻲ ﻛﺴﻲ ﻧﻤﻲ ﺗﻮﺍﻧﺴﺖ‬
‫ﺿﺮﺑﻪ ﺍﻱ ﻛﺎﺭﻱ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﻭﺍﺭﺩ ﻛﻨﺪ‪ .‬ﺑﺴﻴﺎﺭﻱ ﺍﺯ‬
‫ﺍﻳﻦ ﺟﻨﮕﺎﻭﺭﺍﻥ ﺩﺭ ﻫﻤﻴﻦ ﺣﻤﻼﺕ ﺍﺯ ﭘﺎﻱ ﺩﺭﺁﻣﺪﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﻫﻴﭽﻜﺲ ﻳﺎﺭﺍﻱ ﻣﻘﺎﻭﻣﺖ ﺩﺭ ﺑﺮﺍﺑﺮ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﺭﺍ ﻧﺪﺍﺷﺖ‬
‫ﻭ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ ﻫﺮ ﺳﻤﺖ ﻣﻲ ﺗﺎﺧﺘﻨﺪ‪ ،‬ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻥ ﻛﻮﻓﻲ‬
‫ﻭﺍﺭﺩﺍﺭ ﺑﻪ ﻋﻘﺐ ﻧﺸﻴﻨﻲ ﻣﻲ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ‪.‬‬

‫‪52‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪53‬‬
‫ﺗﺎ ﺁﺧﺮﻳﻦ ﻧﻔﺲ‬
‫ﺑﺪﻥ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﭘﺮ ﺍﺯ ﺗﻴﺮ ﺷﺪ‪ ،‬ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩ ﺯﻳﺎﺩﻱ ﺳﻮﺍﺭ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻮﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﺗﺎﺧﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﺍﻭﻟﻴﻦ ﮔﺮﻭﻫﻲ ﻛﻪ ﺭﺳﻴﺪﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﭼﻨﺪﻳﻦ ﺯﺧﻢ ﻛﺎﺭﻱ ﺑﺮ ﺑﺪﻥ ﻣﺒﺎﺭﻙ‬
‫ﻭﺍﺭﺩ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻫﻤﭽﻨﺎﻥ ﺑﺮ ﺭﻭﻱ ﺍﺳﺐ ﺍﺳﺘﻮﺍﺭ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ ﺗﺎ ﺍﻳﻨﻜﻪ ﻳﻜﻲ ﺍﺯ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﻛﻮﻓﻲ ﻧﻴﺰﻩ ﺍﻱ ﺑﺮ ﭘﺎﻱ ﻣﺒﺎﺭﻙ ﻓﺮﻭ ﻛﺮﺩﻩ ﻭ ﺁﻧﻘﺪﺭ‬
‫ﻓﺸﺎﺭ ﺁﻭﺭﺩ‪ ،‬ﻛﻪ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺍﺯ ﺭﻭﻱ ﺍﺳﺐ ﺑﺮ ﺯﻣﻴﻦ ﺍﻓﺘﺎﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬

‫ﺷﻜﻞ ﺷﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -27‬ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﺍﻭﻟﻴﻦ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ‬


‫ﺳﭙﺎﻩ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﺑﻪ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ(‪ ،‬ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﻭ ﭘﻴﺎﺩﻩ ﻫﺎ‬
‫ﺑﻼﻓﺎﺻﻠﻪ ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺗﺎﺧﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﺍﺯ ﻳﻜﺪﻳﮕﺮ‬
‫ﭘﻴﺸﻲ ﻣﻲ ﮔﺮﻓﺘﻨﺪ‪ .‬ﻫﺮ ﻛﺲ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﻣﻲ ﺭﺳﻴﺪ‬
‫ﺿﺮﺑﻪ ﺍﻱ ﺑﺮ ﭘﻴﻜﺮ ﻣﺒﺎﺭﻛﺸﺎﻥ ﻭﺍﺭﺩ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩ ﻭ ﻧﻔﺮﺍﺕ‬
‫ﺑﻌﺪﻱ ﻧﻴﺰ ﺩﺭ ﺭﺍﻩ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺍﻣﺎ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻫﻤﭽﻨﺎﻥ ﺑﺮ‬
‫ﺭﻭﻱ ﺍﺳﺐ ﺍﺳﺘﻘﺎﻣﺖ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺗﺎ ﺍﻳﻨﻜﻪ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﻱ‬
‫ﻧﻴﺰﻩ ﺍﺵ ﺭﺍ ﺩﺭ ﭘﺎﻱ ﻣﺒﺎﺭﻙ ﻓﺮﻭ ﻛﺮﺩﻩ ﻭ ﺁﻧﻘﺪﺭ ﺑﻪ‬
‫ﭘﺎﻱ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻓﺸﺎﺭ ﺁﻭﺭﺩ ﻛﻪ ﺑﺎﻻﺧﺮﻩ ﺍﺯ ﺭﻭﻱ ﺍﺳﺐ‬
‫ﺍﻓﺘﺎﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬

‫‪54‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪55‬‬
‫ﺛﺎﺭﺍﷲ‬
‫ﺑﻪ ﺷﺪﺕ ﺯﻣﻴﻦ ﺧﻮﺭﺩﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﻭ ﮔﻔﺘﻨﺪ‪:‬‬
‫»ﺑﻪ ﻧﺎﻡ ﺧﺪﺍﻭﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺑﺮ ﺁﺋﻴﻦ ﻓﺮﺳﺘﺎﺩﻩ ﺧﺪﺍﻭﻧﺪ‪«.‬‬
‫ﺳﭙﺲ ﺩﻭﺑﺎﺭﻩ ﺍﻳﺴﺘﺎﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺧﻮﻥ ﺯﻳﺎﺩﻱ ﺍﺯ ﺯﺧﻢ ﻫﺎﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﺟﺎﺭﻱ ﺑﻮﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﻣﻲ ﻧﺸﺴﺘﻨﺪ ﻭﻟﻲ ﺩﻭﺑﺎﺭﻩ ﺑﺮ ﻣﻲ ﺧﺎﺳﺘﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﭼﻨﺪ ﺳﻮﺍﺭ ﺩﻳﮕﺮ ﺍﺯ ﺭﺍﻩ ﺭﺳﻴﺪﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺷﺪﺕ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﺭﺍ ﻣﺠﺮﻭﺡ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺑﺮ ﺯﻣﻴﻦ ﺍﻓﺘﺎﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺩﻭﺑﺎﺭﻩ ﺑﺮﺧﺎﺳﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﻧﺸﺴﺘﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺧﻮﻥ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺭﺍ ﺑﺮ ﺳﺮ ﻭ ﺻﻮﺭﺕ ﺭﻳﺨﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﮔﻔﺘﻨﺪ‪:‬‬
‫»ﺧﺪﺍﻭﻧﺪ ﺭﺍ ﺩﺭ ﺣﺎﻟﻲ ﻣﻼﻗﺎﺕ ﻣﻲ ﻛﻨﻢ ﻛﻪ ﺳﺮ ﻭ ﺻﻮﺭﺗﻢ ﺑﺎ ﺧﻮﻧﻢ ﺭﻧﮕﻴﻦ ﻭ ﺣﻘﻢ ﻏﺼﺐ ﺷﺪﻩ ﺍﺳﺖ‪«.‬‬

‫ﺷﻜﻞ ﺷﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -28‬ﺑﺪﻥ ﻣﺒﺎﺭﻙ ﭘﺮ ﺍﺯ ﺗﻴﺮ ﺑﻮﺩ‪،‬‬


‫ﺯﺧﻤﻬﺎﻱ ﻛﺎﺭﻱ ﻣﺘﻌﺪﺩﻱ ﺑﺮ ﭘﻴﻜﺮﺷﺎﻥ ﻭﺍﺭﺩ ﺷﺪﻩ‬
‫ﺑﻮﺩ‪ ،‬ﺧﻮﻥ ﺯﻳﺎﺩﻱ ﺍﺯ ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﻣﻲ ﺭﻓﺖ‪ ،‬ﺍﻣﺎ ﻫﻤﭽﻨﺎﻥ‬
‫ﺑﺎ ﺁﺧﺮﻳﻦ ﺗﻮﺍﻥ ﺧﻮﺩ ﺩﻓﺎﻉ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﮔﺎﻫﻲ‬
‫ﺿﺮﺑﻪ ﺍﻱ ﺑﻪ ﻣﻬﺎﺟﻤﻴﻦ ﻣﻲ ﺯﺩﻧﺪ‪ .‬ﺧﻮﻧﺮﻳﺰﻱ ﺁﻧﻘﺪﺭ‬
‫ﺯﻳﺎﺩ ﺑﻮﺩ ﻛﻪ ﺑﻌﺪ ﺍﺯ ﭼﻨﺪ ﺑﺎﺭ ﺑﺮﺧﺎﺳﺘﻦ ﻭ ﻧﺸﺴﺘﻦ‪،‬‬
‫ﺩﻳﮕﺮ ﺗﻮﺍﻥ ﺍﻳﺴﺘﺎﺩﻥ ﻧﺪﺍﺷﺘﻨﺪ‪...‬ﻭ ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ‬
‫ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﻣﻲ ﺭﺳﻴﺪﻧﺪ ﻭ ﻫﺮ ﻛﺲ ﺿﺮﺑﻪ ﺍﻱ ﻣﻲ ﺯﺩ‪.‬‬
‫ﻛﻢ ﻛﻢ ﺍﻧﺒﻮﻩ ﺳﭙﺎﻫﻴﺎﻥ ﻛﻮﻓﻲ ﮔﺮﺩﺍﮔﺮﺩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺭﺍ‬
‫ﮔﺮﻓﺘﻨﺪ ﻭ ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩ ﺷﺎﻥ ﺭﻭ ﺑﻪ ﺍﻓﺰﺍﻳﺶ ﺑﻮﺩ‪.‬‬

‫‪56‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪57‬‬
‫ﺁﺧﺮﻳﻦ ﻟﺤﻈﺎﺕ‬
‫ﺳﻮﺍﺭﺍﻥ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﮔﺮﻭﻩ ﻣﻲ ﺭﺳﻴﺪﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﭼﻨﺪ ﺳﻮﺍﺭ ﺩﻳﮕﺮ ﻧﻴﺰ ﺣﻤﻠﻪ ﻭﺭ ﺷﺪﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺑﺎ ﺷﻤﺸﻴﺮ ﻭ ﻧﻴﺰﻩ ﺑﻪ ﺷﺪﺕ ﻣﺠﺮﻭﺣﺸﺎﻥ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪ ،‬ﺍﻳﺸﺎﻥ ﺍﺯ‬
‫ﺷﺪﺕ ﺯﺧﻢ ﻫﺎ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﺁﺧﺮﻳﻦ ﺑﺎﺭ ﺑﻪ ﺯﻣﻴﻦ ﺍﻓﺘﺎﺩﻧﺪ ﻭ ﺩﻳﮕﺮ ﺗﻮﺍﻥ ﺑﺮﺧﺎﺳﺘﻦ ﻧﺪﺍﺷﺘﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺧﻮﻥ ﺍﺯ ﺑﺪﻧﺸﺎﻥ ﻣﻲ ﺭﻓﺖ ﻭ ﻣﻲ ﮔﻔﺘﻨﺪ‪:‬‬
‫»ﻫﻴﭻ ﺗﻐﻴﻴﺮ ﻭ ﺗﻮﺍﻧﻲ ﻧﻴﺴﺖ ﻣﮕﺮ ﺑﻪ ﺍﺭﺍﺩﻩ ﺧﺪﺍﻭﻧﺪ ﺑﻠﻨﺪ ﻣﺮﺗﺒﻪ ﺑﺰﺭگ‪ .‬ﺧﺪﺍﻳﺎ ﺍﺯ ﺑﺮﻧﺎﻣﻪ ﺭﻳﺰﻳﺖ ﺧﺮﺳﻨﺪﻡ ﻭ ﺗﺴﻠﻴﻢ ﻓﺮﻣﺎﻧﺖ ﻫﺴﺘﻢ‪ ،‬ﻫﻴﭻ‬
‫ﻣﻌﺒﻮﺩﻱ ﺟﺰ ﺗﻮ ﻧﻴﺴﺖ‪«.‬‬
‫ﺷﻤﺮ ﺩﺭ ﺍﻭﺝ ﺧﺸﻮﻧﺖ ﻛﺎﺭ ﺭﺍ ﺗﻤﺎﻡ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩ ﻭ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﻣﺮﺗﺐ ﺍﻳﻦ ﺳﺨﻦ ﺭﺍ ﺗﻜﺮﺍﺭ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩ‪:‬‬
‫ﻻ ﺣﻮﻝ ﻭ ﻻ ﻗﻮﻩ ﺍﻻ ﺑﺎﷲ ﺍﻟﻌﻠﻲ ﺍﻟﻌﻈﻴﻢ‪،‬‬
‫ﺍﻟﻬﻲ ﺭﺿﺎ ﺑﻘﻀﺎﺋﻚ‪ ،‬ﺗﺴﻠﻴﻤﺎ ﻻﻣﺮﻙ‪ ،‬ﻻ ﻣﻌﺒﻮﺩ ﺳﻮﺍﻙ‪....‬‬

‫ﺷﻜﻞ ﺷﻤﺎﺭﻩ ‪ -29‬ﻟﺤﻈﺎﺗﻲ ﻗﺒﻞ ﺍﺯ ﺷﻬﺎﺩﺕ‬


‫ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ(‪ ،‬ﺍﻃﺮﺍﻑ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ)ﻉ( ﺗﺎ ﻓﺎﺻﻠﻪ‬
‫ﺯﻳﺎﺩﻱ‪ ،‬ﺣﻠﻘﻪ ﭘﺮ ﺗﻌﺪﺍﺩ ﺳﺮﺑﺎﺯﺍﻥ ﻛﻮﻓﻲ ﺩﻳﺪﻩ ﻣﻲ‬
‫ﺷﺪ‪ .‬ﻫﻴﭻ ﻳﺎﺭﻱ ﻧﺒﻮﺩ ﻭ ﻫﺮ ﭼﻪ ﭼﺸﻢ ﻣﻲ ﮔﺮﺩﺍﻧﻴﺪﻧﺪ‬
‫ﻓﻘﻂ ﺩﺷﻤﻦ ﺑﻮﺩ‪.‬‬

‫‪58‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪59‬‬
‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬
‫ﺧﻮﺭﺷﻴﺪ ﺩﻫﻤﻴﻦ ﺭﻭﺯ ﺳﺎﻝ ‪ 61‬ﺩﺭ ﺩﺭﻳﺎﻱ ﺧﻮﻧﻴﻦ ﻣﻐﺮﺏ ﻓﺮﻭ ﻣﻲ ﺭﻓﺖ‪،‬‬
‫ﺧﻴﻤﻪ ﮔﺎﻩ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ( ﻏﺎﺭﺕ ﺷﺪ‪ ،‬ﻭ ﺳﺮ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺣﺴﻴﻦ)ﻉ(‪ ،‬ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﺒﺎﺱ)ﻉ( ﻭ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﻠﻲ ﺍﻛﺒﺮ)ﻉ( ﺑﻪ ﺳﻤﺖ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ‬
‫ﻓﺮﺳﺘﺎﺩﻩ ﺷﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺳﺮﻫﺎﻱ ﺷﻬﺪﺍﻱ ﺑﺮ ﻧﻴﺰﻩ ﻫﺎ ﺑﻮﺩ ﻭ ﺍﺳﺒﻬﺎ ﺑﺮ ﭘﻴﻜﺮﻫﺎﻱ ﭘﺎﻛﺸﺎﻥ ﺗﺎﺧﺘﻨﺪ‪....‬‬
‫ﻭ ﺷﺶ ﺑﺎﻧﻮﻱ ﺑﺰﺭﮔﻮﺍﺭ‪ ،‬ﺍﺳﺘﻮﺍﺭ ﻭ ﺷﻜﻴﺒﺎ‪،‬‬
‫ﺧﻮﺩ ﺭﺍ ﺑﺮﺍﻱ ﻫﻤﺮﺍﻫﻲ ﺍﻣﺎﻡ ﺯﻳﻦ ﺍﻟﻌﺎﺑﺪﻳﻦ)ﻉ( ﺩﺭ ﻧﺒﺮﺩ ﺳﺮﺩ ﻭ ﺳﻮﺯﻧﺎﻙ ﻛﻮﻓﻪ ﻭ ﺷﺎﻡ‪ ،‬ﺁﻣﺎﺩﻩ ﻣﻲ ﻛﺮﺩﻧﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺍﻳﻨﺎﻥ ﺗﻨﻬﺎ ﻛﺴﺎﻧﻲ ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ ﻛﻪ ﺍﺯ ﻣﺮﻗﺪ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻓﺎﻃﻤﻪ)ﺱ( ﻭ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻋﻠﻲ)ﻉ( ﺧﺒﺮ ﺩﺍﺷﺘﻨﺪ‪.‬‬
‫ﺍﻳﻨﺎﻥ ﺗﻨﻬﺎ ﺑﺎﺯﻣﺎﻧﺪﮔﺎﻥ ﻋﺘﺮﺕ ﺣﻀﺮﺕ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ)ﺹ( ﺑﻮﺩﻧﺪ‪......‬‬

‫ﺩﻋﺎ‬
‫ﭘﺮﻭﺭﺩﮔﺎﺭﺍ ﺑﺮ ﻓﺎﻃﻤﻪ ﻭ ﭘﺪﺭﺵ‪،‬‬
‫ﻫﻤﺴﺮﺵ ﻭ ﭘﺴﺮﺍﻧﺶ‪ ،‬ﻣﺎﺩﺭﺵ ﻭ ﺩﺧﺘﺮﺍﻧﺶ‪،‬‬
‫ﻭ ﺭﺍﺯﻱ ﻛﻪ ﺩﺭ ﺍﻭ ﭘﻨﻬﺎﻥ ﺑﻮﺩ‪ ،‬ﺑﻪ ﺍﻧﺪﺍﺯﻩ ﺍﻱ ﻛﻪ ﺩﺍﻧﺸﺖ ﺑﺮ ﺁﻥ ﺍﺣﺎﻃﻪ ﺩﺍﺭﺩ‪ ،‬ﺩﺭﻭﺩ ﻓﺮﺳﺖ‪.‬‬
‫ﭘﺮﻭﺭﺩﮔﺎﺭﺍ ﺩﺭ ﻓﺮﺝ ﺁﻝ ﻣﺤﻤﺪ)ﺹ( ﺗﻌﺠﻴﻞ ﻧﻤﺎﻱ‪،‬‬
‫ﺗﻮ ﭼﻴﺮﻩ ﻓﺮﺯﺍﻧﻪ ﺍﻱ‪،‬‬
‫ﺗﻮ ﺑﺮ ﻫﺮ ﻛﺎﺭﻱ ﺗﻮﺍﻧﺎﻳﻲ‪،‬‬
‫ﻭ ﺗﻮ ﻣﻬﺮﺑﺎﻥ ﺗﺮﻳﻦ ﻣﻬﺮﺑﺎﻧﺎﻧﻲ‪.‬‬
‫ﺁﻣﻴﻦ‪.‬‬

‫‪60‬‬ ‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬


‫ﻏﺮﻭﺏ ﺩﻫﻢ‬ ‫‪61‬‬

You might also like

pFad - Phonifier reborn

Pfad - The Proxy pFad of © 2024 Garber Painting. All rights reserved.

Note: This service is not intended for secure transactions such as banking, social media, email, or purchasing. Use at your own risk. We assume no liability whatsoever for broken pages.


Alternative Proxies:

Alternative Proxy

pFad Proxy

pFad v3 Proxy

pFad v4 Proxy